274 5 128MB
English Pages 634 Year 1899
The
H
ISTORY
OF
Protestantism BY THE
Rev.
WITH
FIVE
J. A.
WYLIE,
HUNDRED BY
THE
AND
FIFTY
LL.D.
ILLUSTRATIONS
BEST ARTISTS
Protestantism, the sacred cause of God’s Light and Truth against the Devil’s Falsity and Darkness ”—Carlyle
Vol.
CASSELL
and
II.
COMPANY,
Limited
LONDON, PARIS, NEW YORK .
PROTESTANTISM IN FRANCE FROM DEATH OF FRANCIS I. (1547) TO EDICT OF NANTES (1598). I.—Henry II. II.—Henry II. III. —First IV. —A
and Parties in France and his Persecutions
.
.
...
0
.
.
.
Guises, and the Insurrection of Amboise
. -
VI.—Charles IX.—The Triumvirate—Colloquy at Poissy
.
.
.
. .
. .
.
VII.—Massacre at Vassy and Commencement of the Civil W^rs VIII.—Commencement of the Huguenot Wars
.
.
.
.
.5
......
National Synod of the French Protestant Church
Gallery of Portraits
V.—The
.
.
.
.
. .
. •
. . .
.
5 .5
.
.5
.
.5
.
.
.
.
.
.5
.
.
.
•
.
.5
.
.
.
.
.
.5
IX.—The First Huguenot War, and Death of the Duke of Guise X.—Catherine de Medici and her Son, Charles IX.—Conference at Bayonne—The St, Bartholomew Plotted
...
.......
XI.—Second and Third Huguenot Wars XII.—Synod of La Rochelle
......
........
XIII. —The Promoters of the St. Bartholomew Massacre XIV. —Negotiations of the Court with the Huguenots ;
XV.—The Marriage, and Preparations for the Massacre XVI.—The Massacre of St. Bartholomew
.
.
.... .... .... ®
XVII.—Resurrection of Huguenotism—Death of Charles IX. XVIII.—New Persecutions—Reign and Death of Henry III. XIX.—Henry IV. and the Edict of Nantes
•
•
•
•
• .
•
•
•
*
®
•
•
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS.
PAGE
Calvin Refusing the Lord’s Supper to the Libertines, in St. Peter’s Cathedral, Geneva View in Prague : the Bridge-Tower
.
Phillip II. of Spain
.
.
.
......
Stockholm
.
.
Frontispiece
1 6 7 12 13
...
Interior of Seville Cathedral .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.*
Gustavus Yasa Upsala
.
.
18
Pastor Olaf at the Conference at Upsala . Coronation of Gustavus Yasa
O
View in Stockholm, showing the Cathedral
.
.
Death of Charles IX. of Denmark
.
.
,
• .
30
31 36
View of Copenhagen View of Yiborg
19
25
......
........
37
Paul Elia Threatened by the Soldiers at Yiborg ....
42
The Protestant Worshippers entering Malmoe
....
Defeat of the Fleet of Christian II. A Danish Chateau . .
. .
.
o
49
Return of the Swiss from the Battle of Pavia View in Bern
.
.
.
.
.
The Student-Messengers arriving at Baden with Letters from Zwingle The Protestant Cavalcade on the way to Bern Street in Bern . . . .
. .
. .
. .
. .
Dr. Haller Dispensing the Lord’s Supper in Bern Cathedral The Iconoclasts at Basle Burning Images and Idols The Departure of Erasmus from Basle View on Lake Maggiore Zurich The Death of Zwingli
-
.....
.
.
.
.
85
.
90
.......
Doorway of Ratisbon Cathedral .
54 55 60 61 66 £ TOURKOV RHXDIKG XI£P PBQTESTANT PLACARD TO PBANCIS I-
(£k* *x flffOA
212
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
“exasperated the executioners. ‘ Wait a bit/ they said, ‘ we will stop your prating.’ They sprang upon him, opened his mouth, caught hold of his tongue, and bored a hole through it; they then, with refined cruelty, made a slit in his cheek, through which they drew the tongue, and fastened it with an iron pin. Some cries were heard from the crowd at this most horrible spectacle; they pro¬ ceeded from the humble Christians who had come to help the poor bricklayer with their compas¬ sionate looks. Poille spoke no more, but his eye still announced the peace he enjoyed. He was burnt alive.”1 For some time each succeeding day had its victim. Of these sufferers there were some whose only crime was that they had printed and sold Luther’s writ¬ ings ; it was not clear that they had embraced his sentiments; their persecutors deemed them well deserving of the stake for simply having had a hand in circulating them. This indiscriminate vengeance, which dragged to a common pile the Protestants and all on whom the mere suspicion of Protestantism had fallen, spread a general terror in Paris. Those who had been seen at the Protestant sermons, those who had indulged in a jest at the expense of the monks, but especially those who, in heart, although not confessing it with the mouth, had abandoned Rome and turned to the Gospel, felt as if the eye of the lieutenant-criminal was upon them, and. that, at any moment, his step might be heard on their threshold. Paris was no longer a place for them ; every day and every hour they tarried there, it was at the peril of being burned alive. Accordingly, they rose up and fled. It was bitter to leave home and country and all the de¬ lights of life, and go forth into exile, but it was less bitter than to surrender their hope of an endless life in the better country; for at no less a cost could they escape a stake in France. A few days made numerous blanks in the society of Paris. Each blank represented a convert to the Gospel. When men began to look around them and count these gaps, they were amazed to think how ihany of those among whom they had been living, and with whom they had come into daily contact, were Lutherans, but wholly unknown in that character till this affair brought them to light. Merchants vanished suddenly from their places of business; tradesmen disappeared from their work¬ shops ; clerks were missing from the countinghouse ; students assembled at the usual hour, but the professor’s chair was empty; their teacher, not waiting to bid his pupils adieu, had gone forth, and was hastening towards some more friendly land. 1 Crespin, Marty rol., fol. 113, verso. D’Aubigne, iii. 143.
The bands of fugitives now hurrying by various routes, and in various disguises, to the frontiers of the kingdom, embraced all ranks and all occupa¬ tions. The Lords of Roygnac and Roberval, of Fleuri, in Briere, were among those who were now fleeing their country and the wrath of their sove¬ reign. Men in government offices, and others high at court and near the person of the king, made the first disclosure, by a hasty flight, that they had embraced the Gospel, and that they preferred it to place and emolument. Among these last was the privy purse-bearer of the king. Every hour brought a new surprise to both the friends and the foes of the Gospel. The latter hated it yet more than ever as a mysterious thing, possessing some extraordinary power over the minds of men. They saw with a sort of terror the numbers it had already captivated, and they had uneasy misgivings as to wliereunto this affair would grow. Margaret wept, but the fear in which she stood of her brother made her conceal her tears. Her three preachers—Roussel, Berthaud, and Courault —had been thrown into prison. Should she make supplication for them'? Her enemies, she knew, were labouring to inflame the king against her, and bring her to the block. The Constable Mont¬ morency, says Brantome, told the king that he “ must begin at his court and his nearest relations,” pointing at the Queen of Navarre, “if he had a mind to extirpate the heretics out of his kingdom. ”2 Any indiscretion or over-zeal, therefore, might prove fatal to her. Nevertheless, she resolved on braving the king’s wrath, if haply she might rescue her friends from the stake. Bigotry had not quite quenched Francis’s love for his sister; the lives of her preachers were given her at her request; but, with the exception of one of the three, their ser¬ vices to the Protestant cause ended with the day on which they were let out of prison. Roussel retired to his abbey at Clairac; Berthaud resumed his frock and his beads, and died in the cloister; Courault contrived to make his escape, and turning his steps toward Switzerland, he reached Basle, became minister at Orbe, and finally was a fellowlabourer with Calvin at Geneva. Meanwhile another, and yet another, rose up and fled, till, the band of self-confessed and selfexpatriated disciples of the Gospel swelled to between 400 and 500. Goldsmiths, engravers, notably printers and bookbinders, men of all crafts, lawyers, teachers of youth, and even monks and priests were crowding the roads and by-ways of France, fleeing from the persecutor. Some went to Strasburg; some to Basle; and a few placed the 2 Laval., Hist. Reform. France, vol. i., p. 31.
FIRST FRENCH PROTESTANT EXILES. Alps between them and their native land.
Among
213
exiles had been cultivating her soil ; if, during those
these fugitives there is one who deserves special
300 years, their artistic bent had been improving
mention—Mathurin Cordier, the venerable school¬
her manufactures; if, during these 300 years, their
master, who was the first to detect, and who so
creative genius and analytic power had been enrich¬
largely helped to develop, the wonderful genius of
ing her literature and cultivating her science; if their
Calvin.
Millon and Du Bourg and Poille we have
wisdom had b'een guiding her councils, their bravery
seen also depart j but their flight was by another
fighting her battles, their equity framing her laws,
road than that which these fugitives were now
and the religion of the Bible strengthening the in¬
They
tellect and governing the' conscience of her people,
had gone whither the persecutor could not follow
wdiat a glory would at this day have encompassed
treading in weariness and hunger and fear.
France!
them. The men who were now fleeing from France were the first to tread a path which was to be trodden again and again by hundreds of thousands of their countrymen in years to come.
During the
What a great,
country—a pattern
prosperous,
to the
and happy
nations—would
she
have been! But a blind and inexorable bigotry chased from her soil every teacher of virtue, every champion of
following two centuries and a half these scenes
order, every honest defender of the throne; it said
were renewed at short intervals.
to the men who would have made their country a
Scarcely was
there a generation of Frenchmen during that long
“ renown and glory ” in the earth, “ Choose which
period that did not witness the disciples of the
you will have, a stake or exile V’
Gospel fleeing before the insane fury of the perse¬
ruin of the State was complete ; there remained
cutor, and carrying with them the intelligence, the
no more conscience to be proscribed;
no more
arts, the industry, the order, in which, as a rule,
religion to be dragged to the stake;
no more
they pre-eminently excelled, to enrich the lands in
patriotism to be chased into banishment; revolu¬
which they found an asylum.
tion now entered the morally devastated
And in proportion
as they replenished other countries with these good
At last the
land,
bringing in its train scaffolds and massacres, -and
If all that
once more crowding the roads, and flooding the
was now driven away had been retained in France;
frontiers of France with herds of miserable exiles;
if, during these 300 years, the industrial skill of the
only there was a change of victims.
gifts did they empty their own of them.
CHAPTER XXI. OTHER AND MORE DREADFUL MARTYRDOMS.
A Great Purgation Resolved on—Preparations—Procession—The Pour Mendicants—Relics : the Head of St. Louis; the True Cross, &c.—Living Dignitaries—The Host—The King on Foot—His Penitence—Of what Sins does he Repent P—The Queen—Ambassadors, Nobles, &c.—Homage of the Citizens—High Mass in Notre Dame—Speech of the King—The Oath of the King—Return of Procession—Apparatus of Torture—Martyrdom of Nicholas Yaleton —More Scaffolds and Victims—The King and People’s Satisfaction—An Ominous Day in the Calendar of France— The 21st of January. As yet we have seen only the beginning of the
king.1
tragedy; its more awful
follow.
in France, that he was the eldest son of the Church,
planted in
that this title it became him to preserve unsul¬
Paris, but these did not slake the vengeance of the
lied, and transmit with honour to his posterity,
scenes
are
Numerous stakes had already been
to
They reminded him that this was a crisis
more victims must be immolated if
and they urged him to proceed with all due rigour
expiation was to be done for the affront offered to
in the performance of those bloody rites by which
Heaven in the matter of the placards, and more
his throne and
persecutor;
kingdom were
to
be
purged.
blood shed if the land was to be cleansed from the frightful pollution it had undergone.
Such was
the talk which the priests held in presence of the
1 Chronique du Boi Franqois I., p. 113, quoted by D’Aubigne, vol. iii., p. 149.
214
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
Francis I. was but too willing to obey. procession,
A grand
which was to be graced by bloody
the van of the procession was carried the head of St.
Louis,
the
patron saint of
France.
There
interludes, was arranged, and the day on which it
followed a bit of the true cross, the real crown of
was to come off was the 21st of January, 1535.
thorns, one of the nails, the swaddling clothes in
The horrors which will make this day famous to
which Christ lay, the purple robe in which He was
all time were not the doings of the king alone;
attired, the towel with which He girded Himself at
they were not less the acts of the nation which by
the Last Supper, and the spear-head that pierced His
its constituted representatives countenanced the
side.
ceremonial and
bit of himself to grace the procession, and nourish
put its
hand to its cruel and
sanguinary work.
Many saints of former times had sent each a
the devotion of the on-lookers—some an arm, some
The day fixed on arrived.
Great crowds from
the country began to pour into Paris.
In the city
a tooth, some a finger, and others one of the many heads which, as it would seem, each had worn in
great preparations had been made for the spectacle.
his lifetime.
The houses along the line of march were hung with
closed by the shrine of Genevieve, the patron saint
mourning drapery,
This goodly array of saintly relics was
and altars rose at intervals
of Paris, borne by the corporation of butchers, who
where the Host might repose as it was being borne
had prepared themselves for this holy work by the
along to its final resting-place on the high altar of
purification of a three days’ fast.4
Notre Dame. streets.
A throng of sight-seers filled the
After the dead members of the Church, whose
Not only was every inch of the pavement
relics were enshrined in silver and gold, came a
occupied by human beings, but every door-step had
crowd of living dignitaries, in their robes and the
its little group, every window its cluster of faces ;
insignia of their ecclesiastical rank.
even the roofs were black with on-lookers, perched
abbot, archbishop and bishop were there, in the
on the beams or hanging on by the chimneys.
glory of scarlet hat and purple gown, of cope and
“ There was not,” says Simon Fontaine, a chronicler
mitre and crozier.
of that day, and a doctor of the Sorbonne, “ the
grand show, the Host; and in it the spectators
Cardinal and
Now came the heart of this
smallest piece of wood or stone, jutting out of the
saw One mightier than any dead saint or living
walls, on which a spectator was not perched, pro¬
dignitary in all that great procession.
vided there was but room enough, and one might
was carried by the Bishop of Paris under a magni¬
have fancied the streets were paved with human
ficent
heads.”1
supported by four princes of the blood—the three
Though it was day, a lighted taper was
stuck in the front of every house “ to do reverence to the blessed Sacrament and the holy relics.”2
the
four pillars of
which were
sons of the king, and the Duke of Vendome. After the Host walked the king.
At the early hour of six the procession marshalled at the Louvre.
canopy,
The Host
The severe
plainness of his dress was in marked and studied
First came the banners and crosses
contrast to the magnificence of the robes in which
of the several parishes; next appeared the citizens,
the ecclesiastics that preceded and the civic func¬
walking two and two, and bearing torches in their
tionaries that followed him were arrayed.
hands.
on that day wore no crown, nor robe of state, nor
The four Mendicant orders followed; the
Francis I.
Dominican in his white woollen gown and black
was he borne along in chariot or litter.
cloak; the Franciscan in his gown of coarse brown
peared walking on foot, his head uncovered, his
He ap¬
cloth, half-shod feet, and truncated cowl covering
eyes cast on the ground, and in his hand a lighted
his shorn head ; the Capuchin in his funnel-shaped
taper.5
cowl,
penitent.
and
patched brown cloak,
girded with a
The king was there in the character of a He was the chief mourner in that great
white three-knotted rope ; and the Augustine with
national act of humiliation and repentance.
a little round hat on his shaven head, and wide
mourned with head bowed and eyes cast down, but
He
black gown girded on the loins with a broad sash.
with heart unbroken.
After the monks walked the priests and canons of
monarch of France, do penance h
the city.
eries that defiled his palace h for the righteous blood
For what did Francis I., For the debauch¬
The next part of the procession evoked, in no
that stained the streets of his capital 1 for the
ordinary degree, the interest and the awe of the
violated oaths by which he had attempted to over¬
spectators.
reach those who trusted him at home, and those
On no former occasion had so many
relics been paraded on the streets of Paris.3
1 Felice, vol. i., p. 29. 2 Chronique du Roi Frangois L, p. 114. 3 Felice, vol. i., p. 30.
In
who were transacting with him abroad ?
No; these
4 Felice, vol. i., p. 30. D’Aubigne, vol. iii., pp. 152—154. 5 Gamier, Hist, de France, xxiv., p. 556. D’Aubigne, vol. iii., p. 154.
ORATION OF FRANCIS I.
215
were venial offences; they were not worth a thought
to us—was touching and eloquent.
on the part of the monarch.
the many favours Providence had conferred on
The King of France
He dwelt on
did penance for the all but inexpiable crime of his
France; her enemies had felt the weight of her
Protestant subjects in daring to attack the mass,
sword; her friends had had good cause to rejoice
and publish in the face of all France their Protest
in her alliance; even when punished for her faults
against its blasphemy and idolatry.
great mercy had been mingled with the chastise¬
The end of the procession was not yet; it still
ment ; above all, what an honour that France should
swept on, at slow pace, and in mournful silence,
have been enabled to persevere these long centuries
save when some penitential chant rose upon the air.
in the path of the Holy Catholic faith, and had so
Behind the king walked the queen; she was fol¬
nobly worn her glorious title the “Most Christian.”
lowed by all the members of the court, by the
But now, continued the king, she that has been
ambassadors of foreign sovereigns, by the nobles
preserved hitherto from straying so little, seems on
of the realm, by the members of Parliament in
the point of a fatal plunge into heresy; her soil
their scarlet robes, by judges, officers, and the guilds
has begun to produce monsters; “God has been
of the various trades,
each with the symbol of
penitence in his hand, a lighted candle.
The mili¬
attacked
in
the
Holy
Sacrament,”
France
has
been dishonoured in the eyes of other nations, and
tary guard could with difficulty keep open the way
the cloud of the Divine displeasure is darkening
for the procession through the dense crowd, which
over her.
pressed forward to touch some holy relic or kiss
day of sorrow and disgrace !
some image of saint.
dawned upon us ! ”
They lined the whole route
taken by the processionists, and did homage on bended knee to the Host as it passed them.1 The long procession rolled in at the gates of Notre Dame.
The Host, which had been carried
“ Oh, the crime, the blasphemy,
the
Oh, that it had never
These moving words drew tears from nearly all present, says the chronicler who reports the scene, and who was probably an eye-witness of it.2 and sighs burst from the assembly.
Sobs,
After a pause
thither with so much solemnity, was placed on the
the king resumed : “ What a disgrace it will be if
high altar; and a solemn mass proceeded in the
we do not extirpate these wicked creatures ! If you
presence of perhaps a more brilliant assemblage
know any person infected by this perverse sect, be
than had ever before been gathered into even the
he your parent, brother, cousin, or connection, give
great national temple of France.
information against him.
mony was
When the cere¬
concluded the king returned to the
bishop’s palace, where he dined.
After dinner he
By concealing his mis¬
deeds you will be partakers of that pestilent fac¬ tion.”
The
assembly,
says the chronicle, gave
adjourned with the whole assembly to the great
numerous signs of assent.
hall, where he ascended a throne which had been
he resumed, “ that the greatest, the most learned,
fitted up for the occasion.
“ I give thanks to God,”
It was understood that
and undoubtedly the majority of my subjects, and
the king was to pronounce an oration, and the
especially in this good city of Paris, are full of zeal
assembly kept silence, eager to hear what so august
for the Catholic religion.” Then, says the chronicle,
a speaker, on so great an occasion, would say.
you might have seen the faces of the spectators
The king presented himself to his subjects with a
change in appearance, and give signs of joy; ac¬
sorrowful countenance; nor is it necessary to sup¬
clamations prevented the sighs, and sighs choked
pose that that sorrow was feigned.
The affair of
the placards threatened to embroil him with both
the acclamations.
“ I warn you,” continued the
king, “ that I will have the said errors expelled and
friend and foe; it had crossed his political projects;
driven from my kingdom, and will excuse no one.”
and we can believe, moreover, that it had shocked
Then he exclaimed, says our historian, with extreme
his feelings and beliefs as a Roman Catholic; for
anger, “As true, Messieurs, as I am your king, if I
there is little ground to think that Francis had
knew one of my own limbs
begun to love the Gospel, and the looks of sadness
with this detestable rottenness, I would give it you
in which he showed himself to his subjects were
to cut off. . . . And farther, if I saw one of my
not wholly counterfeited.
children defiled by it, I would not spare him. . . .
The speech which Francis I. delivered on this
spotted or infected
I would deliver him up myself, and would sacrifice
occasion—and several reports of it have come down
him to God.”3
1 This procession has been described by several French chroniclers—among others, Florimond Remond, Hist. Heres., ii. 229; Journal d’un Bourgeois de Paris; Fontaine. Hist. Catholique ; Maimbourg; and the Chronique du Roi
proceed; he burst into tears.
The king was so agitated that he was unable to
Francois I.
with him.
The assembly wept
The Bishop of Paris and the provost of
2 Chronique du Roi Francois I.
3 Ibid., p. 125.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
216
the merchants now approached the monarch, and
were to mark every step of the way back to the
kneeling before him swore, the first in the name of
Louvre, but Francis and his courtiers were to gaze
the clergy, and the second in that of the citizens,
with pitiless eye and heart on these horrors.
“ Thereupon all the
The procession in returning made a circuit by
spectators exclaimed, with voices broken by sobbing,
the Church of Genevieve, where now stands the
• We will live and die for the Catholic religion! ”n
Pantheon.
to make war against heresy.
At short distances scaffolds had been
MARGARET OP VALOIS, AFTERWARDS QUEEN OP NAVARRE. (From the Portrait in
“
Portraits des Personnages Frangais du XVle Siecle,” by P. G. J. Niel.)
Having sworn this oath in Notre Dame—the roof under which, nearly three centuries after, the
erected on which
certain
Protestant Christians
were to be burned alive, and it was arranged that
Goddess of Reason sat enthroned—the assembly re¬
the faggots should be lighted at the moment the
formed and set forth to begin the war that very
king approached, and that the procession should
hour.
halt to witness the execution.
Their zeal for the “faith” was inflamed to
the utmost; but they were all the better prepared to witness the dreadful sights that awaited them.
The men set apart
to death were first to undergo prolonged and ex¬
A
cruciating tortures, and for this end a most ingenious
terrible programme had been sketched out; horrors
but cruel apparatus had been devised, which let us describe.
D’Aubigne, vol. iii.. p. 161.
First rose an upright beam, firmly planted
in the ground ; to that another beam was attached
FRENCH PROTESTANT MARTYRS. crosswise, and worked by a pulley and string.
The
martyr was fastened to one end of the movable
suffer are repeated aloud.
217 But when any one is
executed for Lutheranism, as they call it—that is,
beam by his hands, which were tied behind his
if any person hath disputed for justification by
back, and then he was raised in the air.
He was
faith, not by works, that the saints are not to be
After
invocated, that Christ is the only Priest and Inter¬
a minute or two’s broiling he was raised again, and
cessor for mankind; or if a man has happened to
next let down into the slow fire underneath.
PORTION OF THE LOUVRE, PARIS.
a second time let drop into the fire; and thus was
eat flesh upon forbidden days; not a syllable of all
he raised and lowered till the ropes that fastened
this is published, but in general they cry that he
him to the pole were consumed, and he fell amid
hath renounced God Almighty . . . and violated
the burning coals, where he lay till he gave up the
the decrees of our common mother, Holy Church.
“The custom in France,” says Sleidan,2
This aggravating way makes the vulgar believe such
describing these cruel tragedies, “is to put male¬
persons the most profligate wretches under the cope
ghost.1
first
of heaven; insomuch that when they are broiling in
silence is cried, and then the crimes for which they
the flame, it is usual for the people to storm at them,
factors to death in the afternoon;
where
cursing them in the height of their torments, as if 1 Sleidan, bk. ix., p. 175.
27*
2 Ibid., bk. ix., p. 178.
they were not worthy to tread upon the earth.”
HISTOKY OF PKOTESTANTISM.
218 The first to be brought Valeton,
the
forth was
Christian whom we have
Nicholas
over again, inasmuch as they come laden with the
already
same good or evil fortune to which they had as it
mentioned as frequently to be seen searching the
were been consecrated.
innermost recesses and nooks of the booksellers’
days.
shops in quest of the writings of the Eeformers.
day in the calendar of France.
The priests
he
day summoned up spectacles of horror; twice has1
“ My faith,” he replied, “ has a con¬
it seen deeds enacted which have made France
offered him a pardon provided
would recant.
Every nation has such
The 21st of January is a noted and ominous Twice has that
fidence in God, which will resist all the powers of
and the world shudder;
hell.”1
gurated an era of woes and tragedies which stand
He was dealt with as we have already de¬
and twice has it inau¬
scribed ; tied to the beam, he was alternately raised
without a parallel in history.
in the air and lowered into the flames, till the cords
January is that whose tragic scenes we have just
The first 21st of
described, and which opened an era that ran on till
giving way, there came an end to his agonies. Other two martyrs were brought forward, and
the close of the eighteenth century, during which
three times was this cruel sport enacted, the king
the disciples of the Gospel in France were pining
and all the members of the procession standing by
in dungeons and in the galleys, were enduring cap¬
the while, and feasting their eyes on the torments
tivity and famine, were expiring amid the flames,
of the sufferers.
or dying on the field of battle.
The King of France, like the
Eoman tyrant, wished that his victims should feel
The second notable 21st of January came round in 1793.
themselves die. This was on the road between the Church of Genevieve and the Louvre.
The scene of this
This day had, too, its procession through
the streets of Paris ; again the king was the chief figure; again there were tumult and shouting; again
tragedy, therefore, could not be very far from the
there was heard the cry for more victims;
spot where, somewhat more than 250 years after,
there were black scaffolds; and again the scenes of
the scaffold was set up for Louis XVI., and 2,800
the day were closed by horrid executions; Louis.
The spectacles of
XVI., struggling hand to hand with his gaolers,
On the line of march
and executioners, was dragged forward to the block,,
other victims of the Kevolution. the day were not yet closed.
again
the lieutenant-criminal had prepared other scaffolds,
and there held down by main force till the axe
where the cruel apparatus of death stood waiting its
had fallen, and his dissevered head rolled on the
prey; and before the procession reached the Louvre,
scaffold.
there were more halts, more victims, more expia¬
Have we not witnessed a third dismal 21st of
tions ; and when Francis I. re-entered his palace
January in France h
and reviewed his day’s work, he was well pleased to
Four months has Paris suffered siege ; the famine
It is the winter of 1870—71.
think that he had made propitiation for the affront
is sore in the city; the food of man has disappeared
offered to God in the Sacrament, and that the cloud
from her luxurious tables; her inhabitants raven¬
of vengeance which had lowered above his throne
ously devour unclean and abominable things—the
and his kingdom was rolled away.
The priests
vermin of the sewers, the putrid carcasses of the
declared
Church
that
the
triumph
of
the
in
streets.
Within the city, the inhabitants are pining
France was now for ever secured; and if any
away with cold and hunger and disease; without,,
there were among the spectators whom these cruel
the sword of a victorious foe awaits them.
deaths had touched with pity, by neither word nor
will rouse herself, and break through the circle
sign dared they avow it.
The populace of the
capital were overjoyed; they had tasted of blood and were not soon
to forego their relish for it,2
of fire and steel that hems her in. made, but fails.
Paris
The attempt is;
Her soldiers are driven back before
the victorious German, and again are cooped up
nor to care much in after-times at whose expense
within
they gratified it.
January, 1871, it was resolved.to capitulate to the
As there are events so like to one another in
her
miserable walls.
On
the
21st of
conqueror.3
their outward guise that they seem to be the same repeated, so there are days that appear to return
1 Crespin, Martyrol.
2 D’Aubigne, vol. iii., p. 165.
3 The German forces shortly afterwards left the land, and with marvellous rapidity, under the skilled guidance of the illustrious Thiers, the gallant nation recovered its position among the countries of Europe.
219
CHAPTER BASLE AND
THE
XXII.
“INSTITUTES.”
Glory of the Sufferers—Francis I. again turns to the German Protestants—They Shrink back—His Doublings—New Persecuting Edicts—Departure of the Queen of Navarre from Paris—New Day to Bearn—Calvin—Strasburg— Calvin arrives {here—Bucer, Capito, &c.—Calvin Dislikes their Narrowness—Goes on to Basle—Basle—Its Situation and Environs—Soothing Effect on Calvin’s Mind—His Interview with Erasmus—Erasmus “Lays the Egg”— Terrified at what Comes of it—Draws back—Calvin’s Enthusiasm—Erasmus’ Prophecy—Catherine Klein—First Sketch of the Institutes—What led Calvin to undertake the Work—Its Sublimity, but Onerousness. We described in our last chapter the explosion that
selves when they ascended the altar to die. France,
followed the publication of the manifesto against
let us hope, will not always be ignorant of her true
the mass.
In one and the same night it was
placarded over great part of France, and when the
heroes.
These have shed around her a renown
purer and brighter, a hundred times, than all the
morning broke, and men came forth and read it,
glory she has earned on the battle-field from the
there were consternation and anger throughout the
days of Francis I. to those of the last Xapoleon.
kingdom.
It proclaimed only the truth, but it was
truth before its time in France.
Hardly had Francis I. concluded his penitential
It was a bolt flung
procession when he again turned to the Protestant
at the mass and its believers, which might silence
princes of Germany, and attempted to resume ne¬
and crush them, but if it failed to do this it would
gotiations with them.
rouse them into fury, and provoke a terrible retalia¬
of him an explanation of his recent proceedings.
tion.
Why so anxious to court the favour of the Protes¬
It did the latter.
The throne and the whole
They not unnaturally asked
kingdom had been polluted; the Holy Sacrament
tants of Germany when he was burning the Pro¬
blasphemed;
testants of France ?
the land was in danger of
being
Were there two true faiths in
smitten with terrible woes, and so a public atone¬
the world, the creed of Rome on the west of the
ment was decreed for the public offence which had
Rhine, and the religion of Wittenberg on the east
been offered.
of that river?
Not otherwise, it pleased the king,
But the king was ready with his
his prelates, and his nobles to think, could France
excuse, and his excuse was
escape the wrath of the Most High.
persecutors of every age.
The terrible rites of the day of expiation we have already chronicled.
that
of almost all
The king had not been
burning Lutherans, but executing traitors. If those
Was the God that France
he had put to death had imbibed Reformed sen¬
worshipped some inexorable and remorseless deity,
timents, it was not for their religion, but for their
seeing she propitiated him with human sacrifices ?
sedition that they had been punished.
The tapers carried that day by the penitents who
the excuse which Francis gave to the German
swept in long procession through the streets of the
princes in his letter of the 15 th of February.
capital, blended their lights with the lurid glare of
stop this plague of disloyalty from spreading, he
Such was “ To
the fires in which the Lutherans were burned; and
punished its originators severely, as his ancestors
the loud chant of priest and chorister rose amid no
had also done in like cases.”1
cries and sobs from the victims.
to induce Melanchthon to take up his abode in Paris,
These noble men,
He even attempted
who were now dragged to the burning pile, uttered
where he would have received him with honour,,
no cry; they shed no tear; that were a weakness
and burned him a few months afterwards.
that would have stained the glory of their sacrifice.
these untruths and doublings availed Francis little.
But
They stood with majestic mien at the stake, and
Luther had no faith in princes, least of all had he
looked with calmness on the tortures their enemies
faith in Francis I.
had prepared for them, nor did they blanch when
to promote conciliation, yet refused to enter a city
the flames blazed up around them.
on the streets of which the ashes of the fires in
The sacrifice of
Melanchthon, anxious as he was
old, when led to the altar, was crowned with gar¬
which the disciples of Christ had been burned were
lands.
not yet cold.
So it was with these martyrs. They came to
And the Protestant princes, though
the altar to offer up their lives crowned with the
desirous of strengthening their political defences,
garlands of joy and praise.
nevertheless shrank back from a hand which they
Their faith,
their
courage, their reliance on God when suffering in
saw was red with the blood of their brethren.
His cause, their vivid anticipations of future glory, were the white robes in which they dressed them¬
1 Sleidan, bk. ix., p. 17&
The
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
220
situation in France began to be materially altered.
were now beginning to become.
The king’s disposition had undergone a change for
went to her grave, in 1549, she left a greater to
When Margaret
the worse; a gloomy determination to crush heresy
succeed her in the government of the little ter¬
had taken possession of him, and was clouding his
ritory which had so rapidly risen from rudeness
better qualities.
to wealth and civilisation,
The men of letters who had shed
Her daughter, Jeanne
a lustre upon his court and realm were beginning
d’Albret, is one of the most illustrious women in
to withdraw.
history.
They were terrified by the stakes
which they saw around them, not knowing but that their turn might come next.
The monks were
again looking up, which augured no good for the interests of learning. O
Not content with the execu-
We return to Calvin, in the track of whose foot¬ steps it is that the great
movement, set for the
rising of one kingdom and the fall of another, is to be sought.
He now begins to be by very much the
tions of the terrible 21st of January, the king con¬
chief figure of his age.
tinued to issue edicts against the sect of “ Lutherans
Charles Y. with his armies, are powers more im¬
Francis I. with his court,
still swarming in the realmhe wrote to the pro¬
posing but less real than Calvin.
vincial parliaments,
the stage with a great noise, but half-a-century
exhorting
them
to
furnish
They pass across
money and prisons for the extirpation1 of heresy;
afterwards, when we come to examine the traces
lastly, he indited an ordinance declaring printing
they have left behind them, it is with difficulty that
abolished all over France, under pain of the gallows.2
we can discover them; other kings and other armies
That so barbarous a decree should have come from
are busy effacing them, and imprinting their own
a prince who gloried in being the leader of the
in their room.
literary movements of his age, would not have been
goes forward with the ages.
credible had it not been narrated by historians of
little before the bursting of the storm, leave Paris,
name.
nevermore to enter its gates.
It is one among a hundred proofs that
literary culture is no security against the spirit of persecution.
It is Calvin’s work that endures and We have seen him, a
Setting out in the direction of Germany, and travelling on horseback, he arrived in due course at
Of those who now withdrew from Paris was Margaret of Yalois, the king’s sister.
Strasburg.
Its name, “ the City of the Highways,”
We have
sufficiently indicates its position, and the part it
seen the hopes that she long and ardently cherished
was expected to play in the then system of Europe.
that her brother would be won to the Reformation;
Strongly fortified, it stood like a mailed warrior at
but now that Francis I. had cast the die, and sealed
the point where the great roads of Northern Europe
his choice by the awful deeds of blood we have
intersected one another.
narrated, Margaret, abandoning all hope, quitted
Alsace, which was an independent territory, thrown
Paris, where even the palace could hardly protect
in as it were, in the interests of peace, between
It was the capital of
her from the stake, and retired to her own kingdom
Eastern and Western Europe, and therefore its
of Bearn.
Her departure, and that of the exiles
fortifications were on purpose of prodigious strength.
who had preceded her, if it was the beginning of
As kings were rushing at one another, now pushing
that social and industrial decadence which ever
eastward from France into Germany,
since has gone on, amid many deceitful appearances,
rushing across the Rhine from Germany into France,
and now
in France, was the dawn of a new day to Bearn.
eager to give battle and redden the earth with
Her court became the asylum of the persecuted.
blood, this man in armour—the City of the High¬
Many refugee families transported their industry
ways, namely—who stood right in their path com¬
and their fortune to her provinces, and the pros¬
pelled them to halt, until their anger should some¬
perity which had taken a long adieu of France,
what subside, and peace might be maintained.
began to enrich her little kingdom.
Soon a new
face appeared upon the state of the Bearnais. laws were reformed,
The
schools were opened, many
A yet more friendly office did Strasburg discharge to the persecuted children of the Reformation. Being a free city, it offered asylum to the exiles from sur¬
branches of industry were imported and very suc¬
rounding countries.
cessfully cultivated, and, in short, the foundations
its citizens intelligent;
Its magistrates were liberal;
were now laid of that remarkable prosperity which
famous; the strong walls and firm gates that would
its
college was
already
made the little kingdom in the Pyrenees resemble
have resisted the tempests of war had yielded to
an oasis amid the desert which France and Spain
the Gospel, and the Reformation had found entrance into Strasburg at an early period.
1 Bulletin de la S octet d de la Histoire du Protestantisme, Francois I., p. 828—D’Aubigne, vol. iii., p. 167. 2 Sismondi, Hist, des Francois, xvi„ p. 455.
Bucer, Capito,
and Hedio, whom we have already met with, were living here at the time of Calvin’s visit, and the pleasure of seeing them, and conversing with them.
BASLE AND ITS SCENERY.
221
had no small share in inducing the Reformer to
Its situation is pleasant, and may even in some
turn his steps in the direction of this city.
respects be styled romantic.
In one respect he was not disappointed.
He
Its chief feature is the
Rhine, even here within sight, if one may so speak,
much relished the piety and the learning of these
of the mountains where it was born :
men, and they in turn were much impressed with
majestic river, sweeping past the town with rapid
the seriousness and greatness of character of their
flow,3 or rather dividing it into two unequal parts,
young visitor.
the Little Basle lying on the side towards Germany,
But in another respect he was dis¬
appointed in them. lacked depth and
Their views of Divine truth comprehensiveness,
and
their
a broad,
and joined to the Great Basle by a long wooden bridge, now changed into one of stone.
Crowning
scheme of Reformation was, in the same propor¬
the western bank of the Rhine, in the form of a
tion, narrow and defective.
The path which they
half-moon, are the buildings of the city, conspicuous
loved, a middle way between Wittenberg and Rome,
among which are the fine towers of the Minster.
was a path which Calvin did not, or would not,
Looking from the esplanade of the Cathedral one’s
understand.
To him there were only two faiths, a
true and a false,
and to him there
eye lights on the waters
of the . river,
on the
be
fresh and beautiful valleys through which it rolls;
but two paths, and the attempt to make a third
on the gentle hills of the Black Forest beyond,
between the two was, in his judgment, to keep
sprinkled with dark pines, and agreeably relieved
open the road back to Rome.
could
All the greater minds
by the sunny glades on which their shadows fall;
of the Reformation were with Calvin on this point.
while a short walk to the south of the town brings
Those only who stood in the second class among
the tops of the Jura upon the horizon, telling the
the Reformers gave way to the dream of reconciling
traveller that he has reached the threshold of a
Rome and the Gospel: a circumstance which we
region of mountainous grandeur.
must attribute not to the greater charity of the
custom which is become a law,” says the traveller
“ They have a
latter, but to their incapacity to comprehend either
to whom we
the system of Rome or the system of the Gospel
Basle, “ and which is singular and very commend¬
in all the amplitude that belongs to each.
able ; ’tis that whoever passes through Basle, and
Calvin grew weary of hearing,
have referred above,
speaking
of
day after day,
declares himself to be poor, they give him victuals
plans propounded which, at the best, could have
—I think, for two or three days; and some other
but patched and soldered a hopelessly rotten system,
relief, if he speaks Latin.”4
but would have accomplished no Reformation, and
Much as the scene presents itself to the tourist of
so, after a sojourn of a few months, he took his
to-day, would it appear to Calvin more than three
departure from Strasburg, and began his search for
centuries ago.
the “ quiet nook”1 where he might give himself to
“ milk-white” floods to the sea, nor was he ignorant
There was the stream rolling its
the study of what he felt must, under the Spirit,
of the fact that it had borne on its current the ashes
be his great instructor—the Bible.
of Huss and Jerome, to bury them grandly in the
The impression
was growing upon him, and his experience at Stras¬
ocean.
burg had deepened that impression, that it was not
spans the Rhine,
from others that he was to learn the Divine plan;
buildings drawn along the brow of the opposite
he must himself search it out in the Holy Oracles;
bank.
he must go aside with God,
whose shadow
like Moses on the
mount, and there he would be shown the fashion of
There was the long wooden bridge that with the crescent-like line of
There were the Minster towers, beneath CEcolampadius,
already dismissed
from labour, was resting in the sleep of the tomb.5
that temple which he was to build in Christendom. Following the course of the Rhine, Calvin went on to Basle.
Basle is the gate of Switzerland as
one comes from Germany, and being a frontier town, situated upon one of the then great highways of Europe, it enjoyed a large measure of prosperity. The Huguenot traveller, Misson, who visited it somewhat more than a century after the time of which we speak, says of it:
“ The largest, fairest,
richest city now reckoned to be in Switzerland.”2
1 "TJt in obscuro aliquo angulo abditus quiete diu Eiegata fmerer.” (Prcefatio ad Psalmos-- Calvini Opp.) 2 Misson, A New Voyage to Italy, vol. ii., part ii., p. 493.
3 The watermen when they descended the Rhine weekly sold their boats at Strasburg and returned on foot, the strength of the current not permitting them to row their craft against it. (Fynes Moryson, Travels, part i., bk. i., ch. 2; fol.; Lond., 1617.) 4 Misson, New Voyage, vol. ii., part ii., p. 502, 5 The tomb of CEcolampadius is to be seen in the Cathedral, with the following epitaph, according to Misson 'rf D. Joh. CEcolampadius, professione theologus; trium linguarum peritissimus; auctor Evangelicse doctrinse in hac urbe primus; et templi hujus verus episcopus; ut doctrina, sic vitas sanctimonia pollentissimus, sub breve saxum hoc reconditus est. Anno salutis ob. 21 November, 1531. Mt. 49.” (Dr. John CEcolampadius, by profession a divine; most skilful in three languages; first author of the Reformed religion in this city, and
HISTOEY OF PBOTESTANTISM.
222
Tliere were the emerald valleys, enclosing the town
troubled was the world around; the passions of
with a carpet of the softest green; there were the
men were raising frightful tempests in it; armies
sunny glades, and the tall dark pines on the eastern
and battles and stakes made it by no means a
hills; and in the south were the azure tops of the
pleasant dwelling-place; but these quiet valleys and
Jura peering over the landscape.
those distant peaks spoke of peace, and so the exile,
GASP Alt HEDIO.
this,
A scene like
(From the Portrait in Paul Freher’s “ Theatrum Vivorum Clarorum”)
so finely blending quietude and sublimity,
weary of foot, and yet more weary of heart—for
must have had a soothing influence on a mind like
his brethren were being led as sheep to the slaughter
Calvin’s; it must have appeared to him the very
—very unobtrusively but very thankfully entered
retreat he had so long sought for, and fain would
within those gates to which Providence had led
he be to turn aside for awhile here and rest. Much
him, and where he was to compose a work which still keeps its place at the head of the Heformation literature—the Institutes.
true bishop of this church ; as in doctrine so in sanctity of life most excellent, is laid under this short stone. He died in the year of our Lord, 21st November, 1531, aged forty-nine years.)
On his way from Strasburg to Basle, Calvin had an interview with a very remarkable man.
The
person whom he now met had rendered to the
INTERVIEW BETWEEN ERASMUS AND
CALVIN.
(See p.
224.)
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
224
Gospel no small service in the first days of the
would have continued to play the champion on
Reformation, and lie might have rendered it ten
the Protestant side.
times more had his courage been equal to his genius,
girding on the sword,
and his piety as profound as his scholarship.
convulsed—things he had not reckoned on when
We
But when he saw monarchs nations beginning
to be
refer to Erasmus, the great scholar of the sixteenth
he gave the first touch to the movement by the
century.
Pie was at this time living at Freiburg,
publication of his New Testament—and especially
in Brisgau—the progress, or as Erasmus deemed
when he saw confessors treading the bitter path of
it,
martyrdom, it needed on the part of Erasmus a
the excesses of the
Reformed
faith having
frightened him into leaving Basle, where he had
deeper sense of the value of the Gospel and a
passed so many years, keeping court like a prince,
higher faith in God than, we fear, he possessed, to
and receiving all the statesmen and scholars who
stand courageously on the side of the Reformation.
chanced to visit that city.
Erasmus’ great service
How unlike the two men who now stood face to
to the Reformation was his publication of the New
face !
Testament in the year 1516.1
sought it on a different line, and each had pic¬
The fountain sealed
Both were on the side of progress, but each
all through the Dark Ages was anew opened, and
tured to himself a different future.
the impulse given to the cause' of pure Christianity
the embodiment of the Renaissance, the other was
thereby was greater than we at this day can well
the herald of a more glorious day.
imagine.
light of the Renaissance, which promised so much,
This was the service of Erasmus.
“ He
Erasmus was In the first the
laid the egg,” it has been said, “ of the Reformation.”
had already begun to wane—sprung of the earth, it
The great scholar, in his early and better days,
was returning to the earth; but where Erasmus
had seen with unfeigned joy the light of letters
stopped,
breaking over Europe.
He hated the monks with
While the shadows of the departing day darkened
his whole soul, and lashed their ignorance and vice
the face of the sage of Rotterdam, Calvin’s shone
there
Calvin
found
his
starting-point.
with the unsparing vigour of his satire; but now
with the brightness of the morning.
he was almost seventy, he had hardly more than
interrogatories, to which Erasmus replied hesita¬
After a few
another year to live,2 and the timidity of age was
tingly, Calvin freely gave vent to the convictions
creeping over him.
that filled his soul.3
He had never been remarkable
Nothing, he believed, but a
for courage; he always took care not to come within
radical reform could save Christendom.
wind of a stake, but now he was more careful than
have no bolstering up of an edifice rotten to its
ever not to put himself in the way cf harm.
foundations.
He
had hailed the Reformation less for the spiritual
He would
He would sweep it away to its last
stone, and he would go to the quarry whence were
blessings which it brought in its train than for the
dug the materials wherewith the Christian Church
literary elegances and social ameliorations which
was fashioned in the first age, and he would anew
it shed around it.
draw forth the stones necessary for its reconstruc¬
Besides, the Pope had been approaching him on his weak side.
Paul III.
fully understood the
tion.
Erasmus
shrank
back
as if
he saw the
toppling ruin about to fall upon him and crush
importance of enlisting the pen of Erasmus on
him.
behalf of Rome.
the Church—against the Church,”4 exclaimed the
The battle was waxing hotter
“ I see a great tempest about to arise in
every day, and the pen was playing a part in the
scholar, in whose ear Calvin’s voice sounded as the
conflict which was not second to even that of the
first hoarse notes of the coming storm.
sword.
Erasmus
which
A cardinal’s hat was the brilliant prize the
Pope
dangled
before
the
scholar.
misjudged !
The
How much
Renaissance—calm,
classic, and conservative as it seemed—was in truth
ErasmuS had the good sense not to accept, but the
the tempest.
flattery implied in the offer had so far gained its
the soil of Christendom, helped largely to unchain
The pagan principles it scattered in
end that it had left Erasmus not very zealous in
those furious winds that broke out two centuries
the Reformed cause, if indeed he had ever been
after.
so.
Could the conflict have been confined to the
schools, with nothing more precious than ink shed 11
it, and nothing more weighty than a little lite¬
rary reputation lost by it, the scholar of Rotterdam
The interview now suddenly closed.
Pursuing
journey,
with
his
travellers at length reached Basle. long bridge, and climbing the they entered
1 See ante, vol. i., bk. viii., ch. 5, p. 428. 2 Erasmus died in 1536; he was buried in the Cathedral of Basle, and his epitaph, on a pillar before the choir, indicates his age by the single term septuagenariiis, about seventy. The exact time of his birth is unknown.
his
inseparable
companion, the young Canon Du Tillet, the two
the city.
Crossing the
opposite acclivity,
It was the seat of a
3 The interview has been related by a chronicler of the same century—Flor. Remond, Hist, Heresii., p. 2510 4 Ibid,
ORIGIN OF THE “INSTITUTES.”
225
university founded, as we
have already said, in
acquaintance.
1459, by Pope Pius II.,
who gave it all the
business sharpens the observing powers, and breeds
privileges of that of Bologna.
It had scholars,
divines, and some famous printers.
But Calvin
did not present himself at their door.
The purpose
Intercourse with the world and its
dexterity ; but the soul that is to grow from day to day and from year to year, and at last embody its matured and concentrated strength in some great
for which he had come to Basle required that he
work, must dwell in solitude.
should remain unknown.
seclusion and retreat, that Calvin sketched the first
He wished to have
perfect unbroken quietude for study.
It was here, in this
Accordingly
outline of a work which was to be not merely the
he turned into a back street where, he knew, lived
basis of his own life-work, but the corner-stone of
a pious woman
the Reformed Temple, and which from year to year
in humble condition, Catherine
Klein, who received the disciples of the
Gospel
he was to develop and perfect, according to the
when forced to seek asylum, and he took up his
measure of the increase of his own knowledge and
abode in her lowly dwelling.
light, and leave to succeeding generations as the
The penetration of this good woman very soon discovered the many high qualities of the thin palefaced stranger whom she had received under her roof.
When Calvin had fulfilled his career, and
grandest of his and of his age’s achievements. The Institutes first
sprang
into form
in the
following manner :—While Calvin was pursuing his studies in his retirement at Basle, dreadful tidings
his name and doctrine were speading over the
reached the banks of the Rhine.
earth, she was wont to dilate with evident pleasure
outbursts of royal wrath, the cruel torturings and
The placard, the
on his devotion to study, on the beauty of his life,
burnings that followed, were all carried by report
and the charms of his genius.
to Basle.
He seldom went
First came tidings of the individual
out,1 and when he did so it was to steal away
martyrs; scarcely had the first messenger given in
across the Rhine, and wander among the pines on
his tale, when another—escaped from prison or from
the eastern hill, whence he could gaze on the city
the stake, and who could say, as of old, “ I only
and its environing valleys, and the majestic river
am left to tell thee ”—arrived with yet more dread¬
whose “ eternal” flow formed the link between the
ful tidings of the wholesale barbarities which had
everlasting hills of its birth-place, and the great
signalised the terrible 21st of January in Paris.
ocean where was its final goal—nay, between the
The news plunged Calvin into profound sorrow.
successive generations which had flourished upon
He could but too vividly realise the awful scenes,
its banks, from the first barbarian races which had
the tidings of which
drunk its waters, to the learned men who were fill¬
anguish.
so wrung his heart with
It was but yesterday that he had trodden
ing the pulpits, occupying the university chairs, or
the streets in which they were enacted.
working the printing-presses of the city below him.
the men who had endured
Calvin had found at last his “ obscure corner,” and he jealously preserved his incognito.
(Eco-
lampadius, the first Reformed Pastor of Basle, was
They were his brethren.
He knew
these cruel deaths.
He had lived in their
houses ; he had sat at their tables.
How often had
he held sweet converse with them on the things
now, as we have said, in his grave; but Oswald
of God !
Myconius, the friend of Zwingli, had taken his
world was not worthy :. and yet they were ac¬
place as President of the Church.
counted as the off-scouring of all things, and as
In him Calvin
knew he would find a congenial spirit.
There was
He knew them to be men of whom the
sheep appointed to the slaughter were killed all
another man living at Basle at that time, whose
day long.
fame as a scholar had reached the Reformer—
were being condemned and drawn to death %
Symon Grynseus.
yet what could he do h
Grynseus was the schoolfellow
Could he be silent when his brethren And
The arm of the king he
of Melanchthon, and when Erasmus quitted Basle
could not stay.
he was invited to take his place at the university,
their cause, for that would be to set up his own
He could not go in person and plead
which he filled with a renown second only to that
stake.
of his great predecessor.
vindicating his brethren in the face of Christendom.
He was as remarkable
He had a pen, and he would employ it in
for his modesty and the sweetness of his disposition
But in what way should he best do this %
as for his learning.
vindicate these martyrs effectually not otherwise
Calvin sought and enjoyed
He could
the society of these men before leaving Basle, but
than by vindicating their cause.
meanwhile, inflexibly bent on the great ends for
mation that was being vilified, condemned, burned,
which he had come hither, he forbore making their
in the persons of these men • it was this, therefore, that he must vindicate.
1 “ Cum incognitas Basilese later era.” ment. on Psalms.)
{Preface to Com¬
It was the Refor¬
It was not merely a few
stakes in Paris, but the martyrs of the Gospel in all lands that he would cover with his regie.
HISTOKY OF FEOTESTAXTISM.
226
Tlie task that Calvin now set for himself was sublime, but onerous.
and order, which it was accused of being, it was
He would make it plain to
the very salt of society—a bulwark to the throne
all that the faith which was being branded as
and a protection to law; and being drawn from
heresy, and for professing which men were being-
the Bible, it opened to man the gates of a moral
burned alive, was no cunningly devised system of
purification in this life, and of a perfect and endless
man, but the Old Gospel; and that so far from
felicity in the next.
being an enemy of kings, and a subverter of law
plished in his Christiance Religioms Institutio.
CHAPTER THE
This was what Calvin accom¬
XXIII.
“ INSTITUTES.”
Calvin Discards the Aristotelian Method—How a True Science of Astronomy is Formed—Calvin Proceeds in the same way in Constructing his Theology—Induction—-Christ Himself sets the Example of the Inductive Method —Calvin goes to the Field of Scripture—His Pioneers—The Schoolmen—Melanchthon—Zwingli—The Augsburg Confession—Calvin’s
System
more
Complete—Two
Tremendous
Facts—First
Edition
of
the
Institutes—
Successive Editions—The Creed its Model—Enumeration of its Principal Themes—God the Sole Fountain of all things—Christ the One Source of Bedemption and Salvation—The Spirit the One Agent in the Application of Bedemption—The Church—Her Worship and Government.
We shall now proceed to the consideration of that
logical discovery.
work which has exercised so vast an influence on
method as a vicious one, though the fashionable
They discarded the Aristotelian
the great movement we are narrating, and which
and, indeed, the only one until
all will admit, even though they may dissent from
they adopted the Baconian method, though Bacon
some of its teachings, to be, in point of logical com¬
had not yet been born to give his name to his
pactness, and constructive
comprehensive genius,
system.
truly grand.
of
that dis¬
dark cftoset of one’s own mind, as the schoolmen
closes its solidity and gigantic proportions to the
did, and out of such materials as they were able to
casual or
It
is
not
passing glance.
contemplated.
a
kind
It must be leisurely
their time, and
Calvin saw the folly of retiring into the
create, fashioning a theology.
Taking his stand
In the case of some kingly moun¬
upon the open field of revelation, he essayed to
tain, whose feet are planted in the depths but
glean those God-created and Heaven-revealed truths
whose top is lost in the light of heaven, we must
which lie there, and he proceeded to build them up
remove to a distance, and when the little hills
into a system of knowledge which should have
which had seemed to overtop it when we stood at
power to enlighten the intellect and to sanctify
its base have sunk below the horizon, then it is
the hearts of the men of the sixteenth century.
that the true monarch stands out before us in un¬
Calvin’s first question was not, “ Who am II” but
approached and unchallenged supremacy.
So with
“ Who is God
the Institutes of the Christian Religion.
Xo such
stand-point of
production
had emanated
from
the
theological
intellect since the times of the great Father of the W est—Augustine. During the four centuries that preceded Calvin,
He looked at God from the the human
conscience, with the
torch of the Bible in his hand. the beginning of knowledge. said, “ Know thyself.”
God was to him The heathen sage
But a higher Authority had
said, “ The fear,” that is the knowledge, “of the
there had been no lack of theories and systems.
Lord is the beginning of wisdom.”
The schoolmen had toiled to put the world in pos¬
light that all things are seen.
session of truth; but their theology was simply
In chemistry, in botany,
It is in the
“ God is light.” in astronomy, he is
abstraction piled upon abstraction, and the more
the best philosopher who most carefully studies
elaborately they speculated the farther they strayed.
nature,
Their systems had no basis in fact : they had no
most skilfully arranges them into a system or
most
industriously
collects
facts,
and
root in the revelation of God; they were a specu¬
science.
lation, not knowledge.
material universe, and the mutual relations of the
Luther and Calvin struck out a new path in theo¬
Not
otherwise
can
the
laws of
bodies that compose it> be discovered.
the
We must
THE INDUCTIVE THEOLOGY.
227
proceed in theology just as we proceed in natural
the City of God, however splendid as a dissertation,
science.
is yet as a system much inferior to the Institutes,
He is the best theologian who most care¬
fully studies Scripture, who most accurately brings
in completeness as well as in logical power.
out the meaning of its individual statements or
Augustine there comes a long and dreary interval,
After
truths, and who so classifies these as to exhibit
during which no attempt was made to classify and
that whole scheme of doctrine that is contained in
systematise the truths of revelation.
the Bible.
of Johannes Damascenus, in the eighth century, is
Not otherwise than by induction can
The attempt
we arrive at a true science : not otherwise than
a very defective performance.
by induction can we come into possession of a true
were the efforts of the schoolmen. The most notable
theology.
of these were the four books of Sentences by Peter
The botanist, instead of shutting him¬
Not more successful
self up in his closet, goes forth into the field and
Lombard, and the Summa of Thomas Aquinas, but
collects into classes the flora spread profusely, and
both are defective and erroneous.
without apparent order, over plain and mountain,
theological productions of that age, we become
grouping plant with plant, each according to its
painfully sensible of strength wasted, owing to the
In perusing the
kind, till not one is left, and then his science of
adoption of an entirely false method of interpret¬
botany is perfected.
The astronomer, instead of
ing the Word of God—a method which, we ought
descending into some dark cave, turns his telescope
to say, was a forsaking rather than an interpreting
to the heavens, watches the motions of its orbs,
of the Scriptures;
and by means of the bodies that
a body of ingenious and laborious men, who have
are
seen, he
for in the schoolmen we have
deduces the laws and forces that are unseen, and
withdrawn themselves from the light of the Bible
thus order
into the dark chamber of their own minds, and are
springs up
before his eye,
and the
system of the universe unveils itself to him.
What
weaving systems of theology out of their brains
the flora of the field are to the botanist, what the
and the traditions of their Church, in which errors
stars of the firmament are to the astronomer, the
are much more plentiful than truths, and which
truths scattered over the pages of the Bible are to
possess no power to pacify the conscience, or to
the theologian.
purify the life.
The Master Himself has given us
the hint that it is the inductive method which we
When we reach the age of the Reformation the
are to follow in our search after Divine truth;
true light again greets our eyes.
nay, He has herein gone before us and set us the
systematiser on a great scale; Melanchthon made a
example, for beginning at Moses and the prophets,
more considerable essay in that direction.
He expounded to His disciples “in all the Scrip¬
Communes, or Common Places, published in 1521,
tures the things concerning Himself.”
were a prodigious advance on the systems of the
these pages that Calvin turned.
It was to
He searched them
schoolmen.
Luther was no His Loci
They are quickened by the new life,
through and through, he laid all the parts of the
but yet their mould is essentially mediaeval, and
Word of God under contribution : its histories and
is too rigid and unbending to permit a free display
dramas, its Psalms and prophecies, its Gospels and
of the piety of the author.
Epistles.
Vera et Falsa Religione, or Commentary on the True
With profound submission of mind he
accepted whatever he found taught there;
The Commentarius de
and
and False Religion, of Zwingli, published in 1525,
having collected his materials, he proceeded with
is freed from the scholastic method of Melanchthon’s
the severest logic, and in the exercise of a mar¬
performance,
vellous constructive genius, to frame his system—
system of theology.
to erect the temple.
but
is
still
defective as a formal
The Confession of Augsburg
To use the beautiful simile of
(1530) is more systematic and complete than any of
D’Aubigne, “He went to the Gospel springs, and
the foregoing, but still simply a confession of faith,
there collecting into a golden cup the pure and
and not such an exhibition of Divine Truth as the
living waters of Divine revelation, presented them
Church required.
to the nations to quench their thirst.”1
it this.
We have said that Calvin was the first to open
It remained for Calvin to give
The Institutes of the Christian Religion
was a confession of faith,2 a system of exegesis, a
this path, but the statement is not to be taken
body of polemics and apologetics, and an exhibition
literally and absolutely.
of the rich practical effects which flow from Chris¬
He had several pioneers
in this road; but none of them had trodden it
tianity—it was all four in one.
with so firm a step, or left it so thoroughly open
reader by the hand and conducts him round the
for
men to follow,
as Calvin did.
greatest of his pioneers was Augustine. 1 D’Aubigne, vol. iii., p. 203.
Calvin takes his
By far the But even
2 Pro Confessione Fidei offertur, says the title-page of the first edition of the Institutess now before us, dated Basilese, 1536.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
228
entire territory of truth.; he shows him the strength
an answer to all charges whether from the Roman
and grandeur of its central citadel—namely, its
camp or from the infidel one, and her justification
God-given doctrines; the height and solidity of its
alike before those now living and the ages to come,
ramparts; the gates by which it is approached; the
against the violence with which the persecutor was
order that reigns within;
seeking to overwhelm her.
the glory of the Lamb
revealed in the Word that illuminates it with con¬
The first edition of the Institutes contained only
tinual day; the River of Life by which it was
six chapters.
watered—that is, the Holy Spirit;
to elaborate and perfect the work.
this, he ex¬
During all his life after he continued Edition after
claims, is the “ City of the Living God,” this is the
edition continued to issue from the press.
“ Heavenly Jerusalem ;” decay or overthrow never
were published in Latin, but afterwards rendered
These
can befall it, for it is built upon the foundation of
into French, and translated into all the tongues of
prophets and apostles, Jesus Christ Himself being
Europe.
the chief corner-stone.
Into this city “ there en-
gener, “ the book increased in every edition, not as
“ During twenty-four years,” says Bun-
tereth nothing that defileth, or maketh a lie,” and
an edifice to which additions are made, but as a
the “ nations of them that are saved shall walk in
tree which develops itself naturally, freely, and
the light thereof.”
without the compromise of its unity for a moment.”1
That Calvin’s survey of the field of supernatural
It is noteworthy that the publication of the work
truth as contained in the Bible was complete; that
fell on the mid-year of the Reformer’s life. Twenty-
his classification of its individual facts was perfect;
seven years had he been preparing for writing it,
that his deductions and conclusions were in all cases
and twenty-seven years did he survive to expand
sound, and that his system was without error, Calvin
and perfect it;
himself did not maintain, and it would ill become
ments
even the greatest admirer of that guarded, quali¬
modify.
fied, and balanced Calvinism which the Reformer
the Reformation.2
or
nevertheless, not one of its state¬
doctrines did
he
essentially alter
or
It came, too, at the right time as regards
taught—not that caricature of it which some of his followers have presented, a Calvinism which disjoins the means from the end, wThich destroys the freedom of man and abolishes his accountability; which is fatalism, in short, and is no more like the Calvinism of Calvin than Manommedanism is like Christianity—it would ill become any one, we say, to challenge for Calvin’s system an immunity from error which he himself did not challenge for it.
He found
himself, in pursuing his investigations in the field of Scripture, standing face to face with two tremendous facts—God’s sovereignty and man’s freedom; both he believed to be facts; he maintained the last as firmly as the first; he confessed that he could not reconcile the two, he left this and all other mysteries connected with supernatural truth to be solved by the deeper researches and the growing light of the ages to come, if it were meant that they should ever find their solution on earth. This work was adopted by the Reformed Church, and after some years published in most of the languages of
Christendom.
The
clearness
and
strength of its logic; the simplicity and beauty of its exposition; the candour of its conclusions; the fulness of its doctrinal statements, and not less the warm spiritual life that throbbed under its deductions, now bursting out in rich practical ex¬ hortation, and now soaring into a vein of lofty speculation, made the Church feel that no book like this had the Reformation given her heretofore; and she accepted it, as at once a confession of her faith,
1 Calvin : his Life, his Labours, and his Writings, p. 43. 2 The following valuable note was communicated to the Author by the late Mr. David Lamg, LL.D. Than Mr. Laing’s there is no higher authority upon the subject to which it refers, and his note may be regarded as set¬ ting finally at rest the hitherto vexed question touching the publication of the Institutes:— “ It is now a long while ago, when I was asked by Dr. McCrie, senior, to ascertain in what year the first edition appeared of Calvin’s Institutes. At the time, although no perfect copy of the 1536 volume was accessible, the conclusion I came to was that the work first appeared in a small volume, pp. 519, with the title Christianas Religionis Institutio, etc. Joanne Calvino, Autore. Basilece, MDXXXVI. At the end of the volume are added the names of the printers at Basle and the date—f Mense Martio, Anno 1536.’ During the many subsequent years, with inquiries at various great public libraries, both at home and abroad, I have not been able to find anything to make me change this opinion, or to imagine that an earlier edition in French had ever existed. In the dedi¬ cation there is a variation in the date between the French and Latin copies, apparently accidental. In the Latin it is dated ‘Basilese, X Calendas Septembres’ [1535]—that is, August 23, 1535—while in the French translation by the author, in his last revised translation of 1559, the date is given f De Basle, le premier jour d’Aoust, mil cinq cens trente cinq.’ "I have subsequently obtained a perfect copy, and have seen two or three others. The former possessor of my copy has a note written perhaps a century ago, as to its great rarity:—f Editio ista albis corvis rarior, princeps sine dubio, quidquid dicat P. Baylius, cujus exemplaria ita sunt rarissima, ut ipsa Bibliotheca G-enevensis careat integro qui ipse asservatur ibidem tantum mutilum.’ [This edition, rarer than a white crow, is without doubt the first. Instances of it, as P. Bayle says, are so very rare, that in the Library of Geneva even there is not a perfect copy; the one there preserved is mutilated.]
METHOD OF THE “INSTITUTES. We shall briefly examine the order and scope of the book.
It proposes two great ends, the know-
ledge of God and the knowledge of man. the first to attain the second,
It employs
229
dim and now defaced image, but to turn our eye upon the undimmed and glorious Original—the Being in whose likeness man was created,
“ The whole sum of
The image of God, it is argued, imprinted upon
wisdom,” said the author at the outset, “ is that by
our own souls would have sufficed to reveal Him to
knowing God each of us knows himself also.”1
If
us if we had not fallen.
But sin has defaced that
man was made in the image of God, then surely the
image.
true way to know what our moral and spiritual
for God has graciously given us a second revelation
powers are, or ought to be, what are the relations
ef Himself in His Word.
VIEW
OF
in which we stand to God, and what the service of love and obedience we owe Him, is not to study the
Nevertheless, we are not left in darkness,
BASLE.
holding it aloft, Calvin proceeds on his way, and bids all who would know the eternal mysteries follow that shining light.
I may add, the copy in the Library at Geneva is mu¬ tilated, the noble dedication to Francis the First having been cut out. The first enlarged edition is the one at Strasburg, f Argenterati/ 1539, folio. Some copies have the pseudonym f Auetore Alcuino/
Grasping that torch, and
Thus it was that the
all-sufficiency and supreme and sole authority of the Scriptures took a leading place in the system of the Reformer. The order of the work is simplicity itself. borrowed from the Apostles’
“"The earliest edition of this French version has neither place nor date, but was published between 1540 and 1543; and in a subsequent edition printed at Geneva, 1553, 4to, the title reads. Institution de la Religion Chrestienne: composee en Latin par Jean Calvin, et translatee en Francois par luymesme, et encores de nouveau reveue et augmentSe. This seems conclusive that the work was originally written in Latin, dated 1535, published 1536, and after¬ wards translated by the author.”
first book.
1 f,'Yera hominis sapientia sita est in cognitione Dei Creatoris et Bedemptoris.” (Qalvini Opp. 3 vol. ix.)
world.
Gfceed,
It is
whose four
cardinal doctrines furnish the Reformer with the argument of the four books in which he finally arranged the Institutes. I. “/ believe in God the Father Almighty, Maker of heaven and earth!
Such is the argument of the
In it Calvin brings God before us in
His character of Creator and sovereign Ruler of the But we must note that his treatment of.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
230 this theme is eminently moral.
It is no scenic
answers,
is the Holy Spirit.
The Spirit works
exhibition of omnipotent power and infinite wis¬
faith in the sinner, and by that faith, as with a
dom, as shown in the building of the fabric of the
hand, he receives a two-fold benefit—a righteous¬
heavens and the earth, that passes before us.
ness which is imputed to him, and a regeneration
From
the first line the author places himself and us in
which is wrought within him.
the eye of conscience.
Can the
obtains the justification of his person, by the second
knowledge of God as Creator conduct to salvation h
the sanctification of his soul, and a fitness for that
leads the Reformer to discuss in successive chapters
glory everlasting of which he became the heir in
the doctrine of the fall; the necessity of another
the moment of his justification.
and clearer revelation; the proofs of the inspiration
corollary from all this is that man’s salvation is
of the Bible.
The question,
He winds up with some chapters on
Providence, as exercised in the government of all In these
The one grand
exclusively, and from first to last, of God’s sovereign grace. Thus do Calvin and Luther meet.
things, and in the superintendence of each par¬ ticular thing and person in the universe.
By the first he
They have
travelled by different routes ; the first has advanced
chapters Calvin lays the foundations for that tre¬
by
mendous conclusion at which he arrives in the book
second has by a sudden inspiration, as it were,
touching election, which has been so stumbling to
grasped the truth; but here at last the two mighty
many, and which is solemn and mysterious to all.
chiefs stand side by side on the ground of “ Sal¬
II.
u And
Son A
in
long
and magnificent demonstration,
the
Jesus Christ, His only-begotten
vation of God,” and taking each other by the hand,
The knowledge of God as Redeemer is the
they direct their united assault against the fortress
argument of book second.
This ushers the author
upon a higher stage, and places him amid grander themes.
a
All that led up to the redemption accom¬
plished on Calvary, as well as itself, is here discussed.
the redemption
Sin, the ruin of man, and
his inability to be his own saviour;
the moral
of Rome, “ Salvation of man.” The moment in which Calvin arrived at this con¬ clusion formed an epoch in the history of Chris¬ tianity—that is, of the human race.
It was the full
and demonstrated recovery of a truth that lies at the foundation of all progress, inasmuch as it is the
law; the gracious purpose of God in giving it,
channel of those supernatural and celestial influences
namely, to convince man of sin, and make him feel
by which the human soul is quickened, and society
his need of a Saviour; such are the successive and
advanced.
majestic steps by which Calvin advances to the
which St. Paul had been led to put on record so full
Cross.
and clear an exposition, early began to be corrupted.
Arrived there, we have a complete Christo-
The doctrine of justification by faith, of
logy : Jesus very God, very Man, Prophet, Priest,
By the times of Augustine even, very erroneous
and King; and His death an eternal redemption,
views were held on this most important subject;
inasmuch as it was an actual, full, and complete
and that great Father was not exempt from the
expiation of the sins of His people.
obscurity of his age.
The book
After his day the corruption
closes with the collected light of the Bible con¬
rapidly increased.
centrated upon the Cross, and revealing it with a
simply an elaborate and magnificent exhibition of
noonday clearness, as a fully accomplished redemp¬
the doctrine of “ Salvation by works.”
tion, the one impregnable ground of the sinner’s
guage of all its dogmas, and every one of its rites,
hope.
was
III. “ I believe in the Holy Ghost A
The
“ Man his own
Church
saviour.”
of
Rome was The lan¬
Luther
placed
That part
underneath the stupendous fabric of Rome the
of redemption which it is the office of the Spirit to
doctrine which, driven by his soul-agonies to the
accomplish, is the argument to which the author
Divine page, he had there discovered—“ Salvation
now addresses himself.
by grace ”—and the edifice fell to the ground.
The theme of the second
book is a righteousness accomplished without the
This
was the application that Luther made of the doctrine.
sinner : in the third book we are shown a righteous¬
The use to which Calvin put it was more extensive ;
ness accomplishedl within him.
Calvin insists not
he brought out its bearings upon the whole scheme
less emphatically upon the last as an essential part
of Christian doctrine, and made it the basis of the
of redemption than upon the first.
Reformation of the Church in the largest and widest
The sinner’s
destruction was within him, his salvation must in
sense of the term.
like manner be within him ; an atonement without
power of the doctrine which strikes us; in those of
In the hands of Luther it is the
him will not save him unless he have a holiness
Calvin it is its truth, and universality, lying en¬
within him.
But what, asks the author, is the bond
trenched as it were within its hundred lines of
of connection between the sinner and the righteous¬
doctrinal circumvallation, and dominating the whole
ness accomplished without him h
territory of truth in such fashion as to deny to
That bond, he
CALVIN ON PREDESTINATION,
231
error, of every sort and name, so much as a foot-
the first and second precepts of the Decalogue, and
breadth on which to take root and flourish.
therefore to be condemned as idolatrous; but that in
IV. UI believe in the Holy Catholic Church.”
the mass they were without warrant in the Word of
The term Church, in its strict sense, he applied to
God, and were therefore to be rejected as unlawful.
the children of God; in its looser sense, to ail who made profession of the Gospel, for the instruc¬
In regard to
Church government, the means
which the Reformer adopted for putting an end to
tion and government of whom, God had instituted,
all existing corruptions and abuses, and prevent¬
he held, pastors and teachers.
ing their
Touching the wor¬
recurrence,
are well
summed
up by
ship and government of the Church, Calvin laid
Dr. Cunningham.
down the principle of the unlawfulness of intro¬
—“ First, by putting an end to anything like the
He sought to attain this end
ducing anything without positive Scripture sanction.
exercise of monarchical authority in the Church, or
“ This, he thought, would go to the root of the
independent power vested officially in one man, which
matter, and sweep away at once the whole mass of
was the origin and root of the Papacy.
sacramentalism and ceremonialism, of ritualism and
falling back upon the combination of aristocracy and
hierarchism,
which had
grown up between the
apostolic age and the Reformation. ”1
Augustine
Second, by
democracy, which prevailed for at least the first two centuries of the Christian era, when the Churches
deplored the prevalence of the rites and ceremonies
were governed by the common council of Presbyters,
of his time, but he lacked a definite principle with
and these Presbyters were chosen by the Churches
which to combat and uproot them.
These cere¬
themselves, though tried and ordained by those
monies and rites had become yet more numerous
who had been previously admitted to office.
in Luther's day; but neither had he any weapon
by providing against the formation of a spirit of a
wherewith to grapple effectually with them.
Third,
He
mere priestly caste, by associating with the minis¬
opposed them mainly on two grounds : first, that
ters in the administration of ecclesiastical affairs,
they were burdensome;
and secondly, that they
a class of men who, though ordained Presbyters,
contained more or less the idea of merit, and so
were usually engaged in the ordinary occupations
tended to undermine the doctrine of justification
of society;
by faith.
Calvin sought for a principle which
repetition of the history of the rise and growth of
should clear the ground of that whole noxious
the prelacy and the Papacy, through the perversion
and fourth, by trying to prevent a
growth at once, and he judged that he had found
of the one-man power, by fastening the substance
such a principle in the following—namely, that not
of these great principles upon the conscience of the
only were many of these ceremonies contrary to
Church as binding j are clivino. ”2
CHAPTER XXIV. CALVIN
ON
PREDESTINATION
AND
ELECTION.
Calvin’s Views on the Affirmative Side—God as the Author of all things Ordains all that is to come to pass—The Means equally with the End comprehended in the Decree—As Sovereign, God Executes all that comes to pass— Calvin’s Views on the Negative Side—Man a Free Agent—Man an Accountable Being—Calvin maintained side by side God’s Eternal Ordination and Man’s Freedom of Action—Cannot Reconcile the Two—Liberty and Necessity—Tremendous Difficulties confessed to Attach to Both Theories—Explanations—Locke and Sir William Hamilton—Growth of the Instit utes. We have reserved till now our brief statement of
the clearness, fairness, and brevity possible, what
Calvin’s views on the subject of predestination and
Calvin held and taught on this great point.
election—the shroud, in the eyes of some, in which
absolute sovereignty of God was Calvin’s corner¬
The
he has wrapped up his theology; the rock, in the
stone.
view of others, on which he has planted it.
Our
universe, he held that God must proceed in His
business as historians is neither to impugn nor
government of His creatures according to a definite
to defend, but simply to narrate; to state, with all
plan; that that plan He had formed unalterably
As the Author and
Ruler of His own
and unchangeably from everlasting; 1 Cunningham, The Reformers and the Theology of the Reformation, p. 342; Edin., 1862.
that it em-
2 Cunningham, Reformers and Theol. of Reform., p. 343.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM. braced not merely the grander issues of Provi¬
and instead of relaxing it tended to brace the soul,
dence,
to give it a more vigorous temper ;
but the whole array of means by which
and certainly
these issues are reached; that this plan God fully
the qualities of perseverance and indomitable energy
carries
and that, though formed
which were so conspicuously shown in Calvin’s own
according to the good pleasure of His will, it is
life, and which have generally characterised those
out
in time;
based on reasons infinitely wise and righteous,
communities who have embraced his scheme of
although these have not been made known to us.
doctrine, go far to bear out the Reformer in this
Such was Calvin’s first and fundamental position.
particular, and to show that the belief in predesti¬
This larger and wider form of the question, to which is given the name of predestination, embraces
nation inspires with courage, prompts to activity and effort, and mightily sustains hope.
and disposes of the minor one, namely, election.
The Reformer was of opinion that he saw in the
If God from everlasting pre-ordained the whole
history of the world a proof that the belief in pre¬
history and ultimate fate of all His creatures, it
destination—that
follows that He pre-ordained the destiny of each
links the means with the end, and arranges that
predestination,
namely,
which
individual.
Calvin taught, as Augustine had done
the one shall be reached only through the other
before him, that out of a race all equally guilty
—is to make the person feel that he is working
and condemned, God had elected some to ever¬
alongside a Power that cannot be baffled;
lasting life, and that this decree of the election of
he is pursuing the same ends which that Power
that
some to life, implied the reprobation of the rest to
is prosecuting, and that, therefore, he must and shall
death, but that their own sin and not God’s decree
finally be crowned with victory.
was the reason of their perishing.
thought, been exemplified equally in nations and in
The Reformer
further was careful to teach that the election of
This had, he
individuals.
some to life did not proceed on God’s fore-know¬
Calvin was by no means insensible to the tre¬
ledge of their faith and good works, but that, on
mendous difficulties that environ the whole subject.
the contrary, their election was the efficient cause
The depth as well as range of his intellectual and
of their faith and holiness.
moral vision gave him a fuller and clearer view
These doctrines the Reformer embraced because
than perhaps the majority of his opponents have
it appeared to him that they were the doctrines
had of these great difficulties.
taught in the Scriptures on the point in question;
not to one side of the question, but to both ; and
But these attach,
that they were proclaimed in the facts of history;
Calvin judged that he could not escape them, nor
and that they were logically and inevitably deducible
even diminish them by one iota, by shifting his
from the idea of the supremacy, the omnipotence,
position. The absolute fore-knowledge of God called
and intelligence of God.
up all these difficulties equally with His absolute
Any other scheme ap¬
peared to him inconsistent with these attributes of
pre-ordination;
the Deity, and, in fact, a dethroning of God as the
God’s executing all things in time quite as much
nay, they beset the question of
Sovereign of the universe which he had called into
as the question of His decreeing all things from
existence, and an abandonment of its affairs to
eternity.
blind chance.
themselves in connection with what is but another
Such was the positive or affirmative side Galvin’s views.
of
We shall now briefly consider the
Most of all do these difficulties present
form of the same question, namely, the existence of moral evil.
That is an awful reality.
Why
negative side, in order to see his whole mind on the
should God, All-powerful and All-holy, have created
question.
The Reformer abhorred and repudiated
man, foreseeing that he would sin and be lost I why
the idea that God was the Author of sin, and he
not have created him, if He created Him at all,
denied that any such inference could be legitimately
without the possibility of sinning ? or why should
drawn from his doctrine of predestination.
not God cut short in the cradle that existence which
He
denied, too, with the same emphasis, that any con¬
if allowed to develop will, He foresees, issue in
straint or force was put by the decree upon the will
wrong and injury to others, and in the ruin of the
of man, or any restraint upon his actions; but that,
person himself'?
on the contrary, all men enjoyed that spontaneity
Calvinistic or on the Arminian side, who can give
Is there any one, whether on the
of will and freedom of action which are essential
a satisfactory answer to these questions'?
to moral accountability.
freely admitted that he could not reconcile God s
He repudiated, moreover,
Calvin
the charge of fatalism which has sometimes been
absolute sovereignty with man’s free will; but he
brought against his doctrine, maintaining that inas¬
felt himself obliged to admit and believe both j both
much as the means were fore-ordained as well as
accordingly he maintained; though it was not in
the end, his teaching had just the opposite effect,
his power, nor, he believed, in the power of any
OPINIONS ON THE “ INSTITUTES. » man, to establish a harmony between them.
What
233
power—these arcana of celestial forces.
It is em¬
he aimed at was to proceed in this solemn path as
phatically the Reformation.
far as the lights of revelation and reason could
said, as it first saw the light in Basle in 1536 was
conduct him;
and when their guidance failed,
small (pp. 514) ; it consisted of but six chapters, and
when he came to the thick darkness, and stood in
was a sketch in outline of the fundamental prin¬
the presence of mysteries that refused to unveil
ciples of the Christian faith.
themselves to him, reverently to bow down and
unity and strength, grandeur and completeness, by
adore.1
the patient and persevering touches of the author,
We judged it essential to give this brief account of the theology of the Institutes.
The book was
The book, we have
The work grew into
and when completed it consisted of four books and eighty-four chapters.
But as in the acorn is wrapped
the chest that contained the vital forces of the
up all that is afterwards evolved in the full-grown
Reformation.
oak, so in the first small edition of the Institutes
It may be likened to the living
spirits that animated the wheels in the prophet’s
were contained all the great principles which we
vision.
now possess, fully developed and demonstrated, in
The leagues, battles, and majestic move¬
ments of that age all proceeded from this centre of
the last and completed edition of 1559.
CHAPTER XXV. calvin’s appeal to francis i. Enthusiasm evoked by the appearance of the Institutes—Marshals the Reformed into One Host
Beauty of the Style
of the Institutes—Opinions expressed on it by Scaliger, Sir William Hamilton, Principal Cunningham, M. Msarcl —The Institutes an Apology for the Reformed—In scathing Indignation comparable to Tacitus—Home-thrusts— He Addresses the King of France—Pleads for his Brethren—They Suffer for the Gospel—Cannot Abandon it —Offer themselves to Heath-A Warning—Grandeur of the Appeal—Hid Francis ever Read this Appeal ? Thus did a strong arm uplift before the eyes of all
“ Spreading,” says Felice, “ ividely in the schools,
Europe, and throw loose upon the winds, a banner
in the castles of the gentry, the homes of the citi¬
round which the children of the Reformation might
zens, and the workshops of the common people, the
rally.
Its appearance at that hour greatly inspirited
Institutes became the most powerful of preachers.” a
them.
It showed them that they had a righteous
The style of the work was not less fitted to arrest
cause, an energetic and courageous leader, and that
attention than the contents.
they were no longer a mere multitude, but a mar¬
duced for the occasion.
It seemed as if pro¬
shalled host, whose appointed march was over a
and power, it was akin to the beauty of the truths
terrible battle-field, but to whom there was also
that were entrusted to it, and of which it was made
appointed a triumph worthy of their cause and of
the vehicle.
the kingly spirit who had arisen to lead them.
The great doctrines he was enunciating engrossed
In flexibility, transparency,
Yet Calvin had not thought of style.
him entirely; and the free and majestic march of his 1 This difficulty has been equally felt and acknowledged by writers on the doctrine of Philosophical Necessity. For instance, we find Locke (vol. iii., p.487; fol. ed., 1751) saying, “T cannot have a clearer perception of anything than that I am free, yet I cannot make freedom in man consistent with omniscience and omnipotence in God, though I am as fully persuaded of both as of any truth I most firmly assent to/’ Locke in philosophy was a necessitarian. Sir William Hamilton, a libertarian, ex¬ presses similar views on this question: “How, there¬ fore, I repeat, moral liberty is possible in man or God, we are utterly unable speculatively to understand. But, practically, the fact that we are free is given to us in the consciousness of an uncompromising law of duty, in the consciousness of our moral accountability.” ^o-
trine of probabilism.
It is important to ask, what
makes an opinion probable ?
To make an opinion
probable a Jesuit finds easy indeed.
If a single
doctor has pronounced in its favour,
bably wrong, but let us imagine some good to be got by it, and it is probably right.
The Jesuit
writers, for the sake of those who are dull of under¬
though a
standing and slow to apprehend the freedom they
.score of doctors may have condemned it, or if the
bring them, have gone into particulars and com¬
man can imagine in his own mind something like a
piled lists of actions, esteemed sinful, unnatural,
tolerable reason for doing the act, the opinion that
and abominable by the moral sense of all nations
it is lawful becomes probable.
It will be hard to
hitherto, but which, in virtue of this new morality,
name an act for which a Jesuit authority may not
are no longer so, and they have explained how these
be produced, and harder still to find a man whose
actions may be safely done, with a minuteness of
invention is so poor as not to furnish him with
detail and a luxuriance of illustration, in which it
what he deems a good reason for doing what he is
were tedious in some cases, immodest in others, to
inclined to, and therefore it may be pronounced
follow them.
impossible to instance a deed, however manifestly
One would think that this was licence enough.
opposed to the light of nature and the law of God,
What more can the Jesuit need, or what more can
which may not be committed under the shield of
he possibly have, seeing by a little effort of invention
the monstrous dogma of probabilism.1
he can overleap every human and Divine barrier,
We are neither indulging in satire nor incurring the charge of false-witness-bearing in this picture of Jesuit theology.
“ A person may do what he con¬
and commit the
most
horrible crimes,
on
the
mightiest possible scale, and neither feel remorse of conscience nor fear of punishment?
But this un¬
siders allowable,” says Emmanuel Sa, of the Society
bounded liberty of wickedness did not content the
of Jesus, “ according to a probable opinion, although
sons of Loyola.
the contrary may be the more probable one.
sible,
The
yet
They panted for a liberty, if pos¬
more boundless;
they wished to be
opinion of a single grave doctor is all that is
released from the easy condition of imagining some
requisite.”
of
good end for the wickedness they wished to perpe¬
“ It is allowable,”
trate, and to be free to sin without the trouble of
A yet greater doctor,
Home, confirms him in this.
Eiliutius,
says he, “ to follow the less probable opinion, even
assigning even to themselves any end at all.
though it be the less safe one.
they have accomplished by the method of directing
judgment of modern authors.”
That is the common “ Of two contrary
This
the intention.
opinions,” says Paul Laymann, “ touching the le¬
This is a new ethical science, unknown to those
gality or illegality of any human action, every one
ages which were not privileged to bask in the
may follow in practice or in action that which he
illuminating rays of the Society of Jesus, and it is
should prefer, although it may appear to the agent
as simple as convenient.
himself less probable in theory.”
He adds: “A
that does the act, so far as it is moral or immoral.
learned person may give contrary advice to different
As regards the body’s share in it, neither virtue nor
persons according to contrary probable opinions,
vice can be predicated of it. the
1 Probabilism will be denied, but it has not been re¬ nounced. In a late publication a member of the society has actually attempted to vindicate it. See Be VExistence et de VInstitute des Jesuites. Par le R; P. de Ravignan, de la Compagnie de Jesus. Paris, 1845. Page 83.
It is the soul, they argue,
hand
is
shedding blood,
If, therefore, while or the tongue is
calumniating character, or uttering a falsehood, the soul can so abstract itself from what the body 2 Pascal, Provincial Letters, p. 70; Edin., 1847.
396
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
is doing as to occupy itself the while with some
break with him at once—such conduct is diabolical.
holy theme, or fix its meditation upon some benefit
This holds true, without exception, of age, sex, or
or advantage likely to arise from the deed, which it
rank.
knows, or at least suspects, the body is at that
wretched disposition as this, we try to put in
moment
practice our method of directing the intention, which
engaged
in
doing,
BLAISE PASCAL.
the
soul
contracts
But when the person is not of such a
(From the Portrait in the Edition of his Works published in Paris,
neither guilt nor stain, and the man runs no risk
1819.)
simply consists in his proposing to himself, as the
of ever being called to account for the murder, or
end of his actions, some allowable object.
theft, or calumny, by God, or of incurring his dis¬
that we do not endeavour, as far as we can, to
pleasure on that ground.
dissuade men from doing things forbidden; but
We are not satirising;
Not
we are simply stating the morality of the Jesuits.
when we cannot prevent the action, we at least
“We never,” says the Father Jesuit
purify the motive, and thus correct the viciousness
in Pascal’s
Letters, “ suffer such a thing as the formal inten¬
of the means by the goodness of the end.
tion to sin with the sole design of sinning; and if
the way in which our Fathers [of the society] have
Such is
any person whatever should persist in having no
contrived to permit those acts of violence to which
other end but evil in the evil that he does, we
men usually resort in vindication of their honour.
397
DIRECTING THE INTENTION. They have no more to do than to turn off the
for evil, but with that of preserving his honour.”
intention from the desire of vengeance, which is
Lessius3 observes that
criminal, and to direct it to a desire to defend their
blow on the face, he must on no account have an
honour, which, according to us, is quite warrant¬
intention to avenge himself; but he may lawfully
able.
And in this way our doctors discharge all
their duty towards God and towards man.
By
if a man has received a
have an intention to avert infamy, and may, with that view, repel the insult immediately, even at
permitting the action they gratify the world; and
the point of the sword.
by purifying the intention
posed to injure you,” says Escobar, 44 you have no
to the Gospel.
they give satisfaction
This is a secret, sir, which was
entirely unknown to the ancients;
the world is
4 4 If your enemy is dis¬
right to wish his death by a movement of hatred, though you may to save yourself from harm.”
And
indebted for the discovery entirely to our doctors.
says Hurtado de Mendoza,4 44 We may pray God to
You understand it now, I hope.”1 2
visit with speedy death those who are bent on per¬
Let us take a few illustrative cases, but only such as Jesuit casuists themselves have furnished.
44 A
secuting us, if there is no other way of escaping from it.”
44 An incumbent,” says Gaspar de Hur¬
military man,” says Reginald,2 44 may demand satis¬
tado,5 44 may without any mortal sin desire the
faction on the spot from the person who has injured
decease of a life-renter on his benefice, and a son
him, not indeed with the intention of rendering evil 1 The Provincial Letters. Letter vii., p. 96; Edin., 1847. 2 In Praxi, livr. xxi., num. 62.
3 De Just., livr. ii., c. 9, d. 12, n. 79. 4 De Spe, vol. ii., d. 15, sec. 4. 5 De Sub. Pecc., diff. 9.
398
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
that of a father, and rejoice when it happens, pro¬
unjustly in a law-suit, or by chicanery, and when
vided always it is for the sake of the profit that is
there is no other way of preserving them.1
to accrue from the event, and not from personal
equally right to kill in a private way a false accuser,
aversion.”
Sanchez teaches that it is lawful to kill
It is
and his witness, and even the judge who has been
our adversary in a duel, or even privately, when
bribed to favour them.
he intends to deprive us of our honour or property
tion ! ” exclaims Pascal.
“ A most pious assassina¬
CHAPTER Y. THE JESUIT TEACHING ON REGICIDE, MURDER, LYING, THEFT, ETC.
The Maxims of the Jesuits on Begicide—M. de la Chalotais’ Beport to the Parliament of Bretagne—Effects of Jesuit Doctrine as shown in History—Doctrine of Mental Equivocation—The Art of Swearing Falsely without Sin—The Seventh Commandment—Jesuit Doctrine on Blasphemy—Murder—Lying—Theft—An Illustrative Case from Pascal—Every Precept of the Decalogue made Yoid—Jesuit Morality the Consummation of the Wickedness of the Fall. The three great rules of the code of the Jesuits,
of arguments to defend and enforce.
which
as abundant as it is painful.
we have stated in the foregoing chapter
-—namely, (1) that the end justifies the means; (2)
The proof is;
M. de la Chalotais
reports to the Parliament of Bretagne, as the result
that it is safe to do any action if it be probably
of his examination of the laws and doctrines of
right, although it may be more probably wrong;
the Jesuits, that on this point there is a complete
and (3) that if one know to direct the intention
and startling unanimity in their teaching.
aright, there is no deed, be its moral character
same logical track do the whole host of Jesuit
By the
what it may, which one may not do—may seem to
writers arrive afc the same terrible conclusion, the
give a licence of acting so immense that to add
slaughter, namely, of the sovereign on whom the
thereto were an altogether superfluous, and indeed
Pope has pronounced sentence of deposition.
an impossible task.
But if the liberty with which
shall take meekly his extrusion from power, and seek
these three maxims endow the Jesuit cannot be
neither to resist nor revenge his being hurled from
made larger, its particular applications may never¬
his throne, his life may be spared; but should “ he
theless be made more pointed, and the man who
persist in disobedience,” says M. de la Chalotais,,
holds back from using it in all its extent may be
himself a Papist, and addressing a Popish Parlia¬
emboldened, despite his remaining scruples, or the
ment, “ he may be treated as a tyrant, in which
dullness of his intellectual perceptions, to avail
case anybody may kill him.2
himself to the utmost of the advantages it offers,
of reasoning established by all
“ for the greater glory of
society, who have written ex professo on
God.”
He is to be
taught, not merely by general rules, but by specific
subjects—Bellarmine,
If he
Such is the course
Suarez,
authors of the
Molina,
these
Mariana,,
examples, how he may sin and yet not become
Santarel—all the Ultramontanes without exception,,
sinful;
since the establishment of the society.”3
how he may break the law and yet not
suffer the penalty.
But, further, these sons of
But have not the writers of this school expressed
Loyola are the kings of the world, and the sole
in no measured terms their abhorrence of murder T
heirs of all its wealth, honours, and pleasures; and
Have they not loudly exclaimed against the sacrilege
whatever law, custom, sacred and venerable office,
of touching him on whom the Church’s anointing oil
august and kingly authority, may stand between
has been poured as king 2
In short, do they not
them and their rightful lordship over mankind, they are at liberty to throw down and tread into the dust as a vile and accursed thing.
The moral maxims
of the Jesuits are to be put in force against kings as well as against peasants. The lawfulness of killing excommunicated, that is Protestant, kings, the Jesuit writers have been at great pains to maintain, and by a great variety
1 Sanchez, Mor. Theol., livr. ii., c. 39, n. 7. 2 A quocumque privato potest interfici.”—Suarez; (i., 6, ch. 4)—Chalotais, Beport Constit. Jesuits, p. 84. 3 “There are/’ adds M. de la Chalotais, in a foot-note* “nearly 20,000 Jesuits in the world [1761], all imbued with Ultramontane doctrines, and the doctrine of murder.” That is more than a century ago. Their numbers haveprodigiously increased since.
399
REGICIDE AND MURDER forbid and condemn the crime of regicide ? this is true :
Yes :
but they protest with a warmth that
But why should we dwell on these written proofs of the disloyal and murderous principles
of the
Rome can take
Jesuits, when their acted deeds bear still more em¬
back her anointing, and when she has stripped the
phatic testimony to the true nature and effects of
monarch of his office he becomes the lawful victim
their principles ?
of her consecrated dagger.
on every hand the melancholy monuments of these
is fitted to awaken suspicion.
On what grounds, the
We have only to look around, and
Jesuits demand, can the killing of one who is no
doctrines meet our afflicted sight.
longer a king be called regicide ?
of Europe shall we turn where we are not able to
Suarez tells us
To what country
that when a king is deposed he is no longer to be
track the Jesuit by his bloody foot-prints?
regarded as a king, but as a tyrant: “ he there¬
page of modern history shall we open and not read
fore loses his authority, and from that moment may
fresh proofs that the Papal doctrine of killing ex¬
be lawfully killed.”
Nor is the opinion of the
Jesuit Mariana less decided.
Speaking of a prince,
What
communicated kings was not meant to slumber in forgotten tomes, but to be acted out in the living
he says: “ If he should overthrow the religion of the
world 1
We see Henry III. falling by their dagger.
country, and introduce a public enemy within the
Henry
IV.
State, I shall never consider that man to have done
weapon.
wrong, who, favouring the public
would
The great Prince of Orange is dispatched by their
attempt to kill him. . . . . It is useful that princes
agent, shot down at the door of his own dining¬
should be made to know, that if they oppress the
room.
State and become intolerable by their vices and their
to murder Elizabeth, history attests.
pollution, they hold their lives upon this tenure,
escaped their machinations is one of the marvels of
wishes,
perishes
by
the
same
consecrated
The King of Portugal dies by their orders
How many assassins they sent to England That she
that to put them to death is not only laudable, but a
history.
glorious action.It is a glorious thing to
into which they have crept with their doctrines of
exterminate this pestilent and mischievous race
murder and assassination ; the very sanctuary of
from the community of men.”1
their own Popes they have defiled with blood.
Wherever the Jesuits have planted missions,
Nor is it only the palaces of monarchs
behold Clement XIV.
We
signing the order for the
opened seminaries, and established colleges, they
banishment of the Jesuits, and soon thereafter he
have been careful to inculcate these principles in
is overtaken by their vengeance, and dies by poison.
the minds of the youth; thus sowing the seeds of
In the Gunpowder Plot we see them deliberately
future tumults, revolutions,
planning to destroy at one blow the nobility and
regicides, and wars.
These evil fruits have appeared sometimes sooner,
gentry of England.
To them we owe those civil
sometimes later, but they have never failed to show
wars which for
many years drenched
themselves, to the grief of nations and the dismay
blood the fair provinces of France.
of kings.
train
John Chatel, who attempted the life of
so
of that crowning
horror,
with
They laid the the St. Bartho¬
Henry IV., had studied in the College of Clermont,
lomew massacre.
in which the Jesuit G-uignard was Professor of
between them the guilt of the “Invincible Armada,”'
Divinity.
In the chamber of the would-be regicide,
which,
Philip II. and the Jesuits share
instead of inflicting the measureless ruin
a manuscript of Guignard was found, in which,
and havoc which its authors intended, by a most-
besides other dangerous articles, that Father ap¬
merciful Providence became the means of exhaust¬
proved not only of the assassination of Henry III.
ing the treasures and overthrowing the prestige of
by Clement, but also maintained that the same
Spain.
thing ought to be attempted against le Bearnois, as
revolutions, torturings, poisonings, assassinations,
What a harvest of plots, tumults, seditions,
he called Henry IV., which occasioned the first
regicides, and massacres has Christendom reaped
banishment of the order out of France, as a society
from the seed sown by the Jesuits !
detestable and diabolical.
be sure that we have yet seen the last and greatest,
liament, passed in
1591,
The sentence of the Par¬ ordained
“that all the
Nor can we
of their crimes.
priests and scholars of the College of Clermont, and
We can bestow only the most cursory glance at
others calling themselves the Society of Jesus, as
the teaching of the Jesuits under the other heads of
being corrupters of youth, disturbers of the public
moral duty.
peace, and enemies of the king and State, should
reservation.
Let us take their doctrine of mental
depart in three days from their house and college,
heinous and, at the same time, more dangerous.
and in fifteen days out of the whole kingdom.”
“ The doctrine of equivocation,”
Nothing
can
be
imagined
more
says Blackwell,
“ is for the consolation of afflicted Roman Catholics 1 Mariana, Be Rege et Regis Institutione, lib. i., cap. 6, p. 61, and lib. i., cap. 7, p. 64; ed. 1640.
and the instruction of all the godly.” It has been of special use to them when residing among infidels
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
400 and lieretics.
In heathen countries, as China and
We shall offer no comment on the teaching of
Malabar, they have professed conformity to the rites
the Jesuits
under'the head of the seventh com¬
and the worship of paganism, while remaining Roman
mandment.
The doctrines of the society which
Catholics at heart, and they have taught their con¬
relate to chastity are screened from exposure by
verts to venerate their former deities in appearance,
the very enormity of their turpitude.
on the strength of directing aright the intention, and
them as we would the open grave, whose putrid
the pious fraud of concealing a crucifix under their
breath kills all who inhale it.
clothes.
the sweetness of a pure imagination, and the joy of
Equivocation they have carried into civil life as well as into religion.
We pass
Let all who value
a conscience undefiled, shun the confessional as
“ A man may swear,” says
they would the chamber in which the plague is
Sanchez, “ that he hath not done a thing though
shut up, or the path in which lurks the deadly
he really have, by understanding within himself that
scorpion.
he did it not on such and such a day, or before he was
deadly—is here a poison that consumes flesh, and
born ; or by reflecting on some other circumstance
bones, and soul.
of the like nature; and yet the words he shall make
The teaching of the Jesuits—everywhere
Which precept of the Decalogue is it that the
use of shall not have a sense implying any such
theology of the Jesuits does not set aside ?
thing; and this is a thing of great convenience on
commanded “ to fear the great and dreadful name
many occasions, and is always justifiable when it is
of the Lord our God.”
necessary or advantageous in anything that con¬
us to blaspheme it.
cerns a man’s health, honour, or estate.”1
We are
The Jesuit Bauny teaches
“ If one has been hurried by
Filiu-
passion into cursing and doing despite to his Maher,
tius, in his Moral Questions, asks, “ Is it wrong
it may be determined that he has only sinned
to use equivocation in swearing 'I
venially.”4
I answer, first,
This is much, but Casnedi goes a little
that it is not in itself a sin to use equivocation in
farther.
swearing.This is the common doctrine after
good, and commanded,” says this Jesuit; “if through
Huarez.”
invincible error you believe lying or blasphemy
“ Is it perjury or sin to equivocate in a
just cause V’ he further asks. he answers.
“It is not perjury,”
to
be
“ Do what your conscience tells you to be
commanded
by God,
blaspheme.”5
The
“ As, for example, in the case of a
licence given by the Jesuits to regicide we have
man who has outwardly made a promise without
already seen; not less ample is the provision their
the intention of promising; if he is asked whether
theology makes for the perpetration of ordinary
he has promised, he may deny it, meaning that he
homicide^ and murders.
has not promised with a binding promise ; and thus
to kill a false witness, seeing otherwise one should
he may swear.”
be killed by him.6
Filiutius asks yet again, “With what precaution is equivocation to be used %
When we begin, for
children from justly
Reginald says it is lawful
Parents who seek to turn their
the faith,
says Fagundez,
be killed by them”7
“ may
The Jesuit Amicus
instance, to say, I swear, we must insert in a sub¬
teaches that it is lawful for an ecclesiastic, or one
dued tone the mental restriction, that to-day, and
in a religious order, to hill a calumniator when
then continue aloud, I have not eaten such a thing;
other means of defence are wanting.8
or, 1 swear—then insert, I say—then conclude in the
extends the same privilege to laymen.
same loud voice, that I have not done this or that
brings an impeachment before a prince or judge
thing;
And Airult If one
for thus the whole speech is most true.”2
against another, and if that other cannot by any
What an admirable lesson in the art 'of speaking
means avert the injury to his character, he may hill
the truth to one’s self, and lying and swearing
him secretly.
falsely to everybody else !3
rity of Bannez, who gives the same latitude to the
1 Sanch. Op. Mor., pars. 2, lib. iii., cap. 6. 2 Mor. Quwst. de Christianis Officiis et Casibus Conscientice, tom. ii., tr. 25, cap. 11, n. 321—328; Lugduni, 1633. 3 It is easy to see how these precepts may be put in practice an swearing the oath of allegiance, or promising to obey the law, or engaging not to attack the institu¬ tions of the State, or to obey the rules and further the ends of any society, lay or clerical, into which the Jesuit may enter. The swearer has only to repeat aloud the pre¬ scribed words, and insert silently such other words, at the fitting places, as shall make void the oath, clause by clause—nay, bind the swearer to the very opposite of that which the administrator of the oath intends to pledge him to.
the calumniator should first be warned that he
He fortifies his opinion by the autho¬
right of defence, with this slight qualification, that desist from his slander, and if he will not, he should be hilled, not openly, on account of the scandal, but secretly.9
4 Stephen Bauny, Som. des Peches; Eiotfen, 1653. 5 Crisis Theol.y tom. i., disp. 6, sect. 2, § 1, n. 59. 6 Praxis Fori Pcenit., tom. ii., lib. xxi, cap. 5, n. 57. 7 In Prcecep. Decal., tom. i., lib. iv., cap. 2, n. 7, 8. 8 Cursus Theol., tom. v., disp. 36, sec. 5, n. 118. 9 Cens., pp. 319, 320—Collation faite & la requete de V TJni* versite de Paris, 1613; Paris, 1720.
JESUIT MORALITY. Of a like ample kind is the liberty which the Jesuits permit to be taken with the property of one’s , neighbour. •sanction.
with
his
401 services.
So
has Valerius
Reginald
decided.3
Dishonesty in all its forms they
It is fair, however, that the pupil be cautioned
They encourage cheats, frauds, purloin¬
that this lesson cannot safely be put in practice
ings, robberies, by furnishing men with a ready
against his teacher.
justification of these misdeeds, and especially by
related by Pascal, shows that the Fathers do not
The story of John d’Alba,
persuading their votaries that if they will only take
relish these doctrines in praxi nearly so well as
the trouble of doing them in the way of directing the
in thesi, when they themselves are the sufferers by
intention according to their instructions, they need
them.
not fear being called to a reckoning for them here¬
College of Clermont, in the Rue St. Jacques, and
after.
thinking that his wages were not equal to his
The Jesuit Emmanuel Sa teaches “that it
D’Alba was a servant to the Fathers in the
is not a mortal sin to take secretly from him who
merits, he stole
would give if he were askedthat “ it is not theft
make up the discrepancy, never dreaming that they
to take a small thing from a husband or a father; ”
would make a criminal of him for following their
that if one has taken what he doubts to have been
approved rules.
his own, that doubt makes it probable that it is safe
prison on a charge of larceny.
He was brought to
to keep it; that if one, from an urgent necessity, or
trial on the 16th April, 1647.
He confessed before
somewhat from his masters to
However, they threw him into
without causing much loss, takes wood from another
the court to having taken some pewter plates, but
man’s pile, he is not obliged* to restore it.
One who
maintained that the act was not to be regarded as
has stolen small things at different times, is not
a theft, on the strength of this same doctrine of
obliged to make restitution till such time as they
Father Bauny, which
amount together to a considerable sum.
But should
judges, with attestation from another of the Fathers,
the purloiner feel restitution burdensome, it may
under whom he had studied these cases of con¬
comfort him to know that some Fathers deny it with
science.
probability}
gave
The case of merchants, whose gains may not be increasing so fast
as
they could wish, has been
kindly considered by the Fathers.
he
produced
before
the
Whereupon the judge, M. de Montrouge,
sentence as follows :—“ That the prisoner
should not be acquitted upon the writings of these Fathers, containing a doctrine so unlawful, per¬
Francis Tolet
nicious, and' contrary to all laws, natural, Divine,
says that if a man cannot sell his wine at a fair
and human, such as might confound all families,
price—that is, at a fail* profit—he may mix a little
and authorise all domestic frauds and infidelities ; ”
water with his wine, or diminish his measure, and
but that the over-faithful disciple “ should be whipt
sell it for pure wine of full measure.
before the College gate of Clermont by the common
Of course, if
it be lawful to mix wine, it is lawful to adulterate
executioner, who at the same time should burn alt
all other articles of merchandise, or to diminish the
the writings of those Fathers treating of theft; and
weight, and go on vending as if the balance were
that they should be prohibited to teach any suet
just and the article genuine.
doctrine again under pain of death”4
Only the trafficker in
spurious goods, with false balances, must be careful
But we should swell beyond all reasonable limits
not to tell a lie; or if he should be compelled to
our enumeration, were we to quote even a tithe of
equivocate, he must do it in accordance with the
the “moral maxims” of the Jesuits.
rules laid down by the Fathers for enabling one
one in the long catalogue of sins and crimes which
to
their casuistry does not sanction.
say what
is
not
true
without
committing
falsehood.1 2
Pride, ambition,
avarice, luxury, bribery, and a host of vices which
Domestic servants also have been taken by the Fathers under the shield of their casuistry.
There is not
Should
we cannot specify, and some of which are too hor¬ rible to be mentioned, find in these Fathers their
a servant deem his wages not enough, or the food,
patrons
clothing, and other necessaries provided for him
Middle Ages boasted that their art enabled them
and
defenders.
The alchemists of
the
not equal to that which is provided for servants of
to operate on the essence of things, and to change
similar rank in other houses, he may recompense
what was vile into what was noble.
himself by abstracting from his master’s property
darker art of the Jesuits acts in the reverse order;
as much as shall make his wages commensurate
it changes all that is noble into all that is vile. Theirs
1 Aphorisrm Confessariorum—verbo furtum, n. 3—8; Co¬ lonise, 1590. 2 Instructio Sacerdotum—Be Septem Peccat. Mort., cap. 49, n. 5; Eomse, 1601.
33
is
an accursed alchemy
But the still
by which
they
3 Praxis Fori Pcenitentialis, lib. xxv., cap. 44, n. 555; Lugduni, 1620. 4 Pascal, Letter vi., pp. 90, 91; Edin., 1847.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
402
and virtue into vice.
effaced and forgotten in the greater splendour and
There is no destructive agency with which the
transmute good into evil,
the more solid strength of the restored structures,
world is liable to be visited, that penetrates so
Revolution may overturn thrones, abolish laws, and
deep, or inflicts so remediless a ruin, as the morality
break in pieces the framework of society; but when
of the Jesuits.
The tornado sweeps along over the
the fury of faction has spent its rage, order emerges
surface of the globe, leaving the earth naked and
from the chaos, law resumes its supremacy, and the
ST. FRANCIS XAVIER.
bare as before tree or shrub beautified it; but the
institutions which had been destroyed in the hour
summers of after years re-clothe it with verdure
of madness, are restored in the hour of calm wisdom
and beautify it with flowers, and make it smile
that succeeds.
But the havoc the Jesuit inflicts is
as sweetly as before.
irremediable.
It has nothing in it counteractive
The earthquake overturns
the dwelling of man, and swallows up the proudest
or restorative; it is only evil.
of his cities; but his
and power survive
works of man or the institutions of man merely
the shock, and when the destroyer has passed,
that it puts forth its fearfully destructive power ;
the architect sets up again the fallen palace, and
it is upon man himself.
rebuilds the mined city, and the catastrophe is
that it strikes, like the pestilence; it is the soul.
skill
It is not upon the
It is not the body of man
THE GOAL OF JESUITISM.
403
It is not a part, but the whole of man that it
man.
consigns to corruption and ruin.
Conscience it
nothing spiritual, nothing moral, nothing intellectual,
The full triumph of Jesuitism would leave
destroys, knowledge it extinguishes, the very power
nothing strictly and properly human existing upon
of discerning between right and wrong it takes
the earth.
away, and shuts up the man in a prison whence
impelled by nothing but appetites and passions, and
no created agency or influence can set him free.
these more fierce and cruel than those of the tiger.
Man it would change into the animal,
A GROUP OP JESUITS.
The Fall defaced the image of God in which man
Society would become simply a herd of wolves,
was made; we say,
lawless, ravenous, greedy of each other’s blood, and
defaced;
obliterate or extinguish it.
it did not totally
Jesuitism, more ter¬
rible than the Fall, totally effaces from the soul of
perpetually in quest of prey.
Even
Jesuitism
itself would perish, devoured by its own progeny.
“ knowledge,
Our earth at last would be simply a vast sepulchre,
righteousness, and true holiness” in which man was
moving round the sun in its annual circuit, its
made it leaves not a trace.
bosom as joyless, dreary, and waste as are those
man the
image of
God.
Of
the
It plucks up by its
very roots the moral constitution which God gave
silent spaces through which it rolls.
404
CHAPTER VI. THE “ SECRET INSTRUCTIONS ” OF THE JESUITS.
The Jesuit Soldier in Armour complete—Secret Instructions—How to Plant their First Establishments—Taught t»i Court the Parochial Clergy—to Visit the Hospitals—to Find out the Wealth of their several Districts—to make Purchases in another Name—to Draw the Youth round them—to Supplant the Older Orders—How to get the Friendship of Great Men—How to Manage Princes—How to Direct their Policy—Condact their Embassies— Appoint their Servants, &c.—Taught to Affect a Great Show of Lowliness. So far we have traced the enrolment and training
quench all the fiery darts of” human remorse and
of that mighty army which Loyola had called into
Divine threatenings.
existence for the conquest of Protestantism.
Their
hope of” Paradise, which has been most surely
He takes “for an helmet the
leader, who was quite as much the shrewd calcu¬
promised him as the reward of his services; and
lator as the fiery fanatic, took care before sending
in his hand he grasps the two-edged sword of a
his soldiers into the field to provide them with
fiery fanaticism, wherewith he is able to cut his
armour, every way fitted for the combatants they
way, with prodigious bravery, through truth and
were to meet, and the campaign they were to wage.
righteousness.1 Verily, the man who has to sustain
The war in which they were to be occupied was
the onset of soldiers like these, and parry the
one against right and truth, against knowledge and
thrusts of their weapons, had need to be mindful
liberty, and where could weapons be found for the
of the ancient admonition, “Take unto you the
successful prosecution of a conflict like this, save
whole armour of God,
in the old-established arsenal of sophisms ?
withstand in the evil day, and having done all, to
The schoolmen,
those Vulcans of the Middle
Ages, had forged these weapons with the hammers
that ye may be able to
stand.” Shrewd,
practical, and precise are the instruc¬
of their speculation on the anvil of their subtlety,
tions of the Jesuits.
and having made them sharp of edge, and given
select the best points in that great field, all of
them an incomparable flexibility, they stored them
which they are in due time to subjugate and pos¬
First of all they are told to
up, and kept them in reserve against the great
sess.
coming day of battle.
by establishing convents, or colleges, in the chief
To this armoury Loyola,
That field is Christendom.
They are to begin
and the chiefs that succeeded him in command, had
cities.
recourse.
secured, the smaller places will be easily occupied.
But not content with these weapons as
The great centres of population and wealth
the schoolmen had left them, the Jesuit doctors
Should any one ask on what errand the good
put them back again into the fire; they kept them
Fathers have come, they are instructed to make
in a furnace heated seven times, till every particle
answer that their “sole object is the salvation of
of the dross of right and truth that cleaved to them
souls.”
had been purged out, and they had acquired a
strive to be the first to welcome to their houses,
What a pious errand!
Who would not
flexibility absolutely and altogether perfect, and
and to seat at their tables, men whose aims are so
a keenness of edge unattained before,
unselfish and heavenly ?
and were
They are to be careful to
now deemed every way fit for the hands that were
maintain a humble and submissive deportment;
to wield them, and every way worthy of the cause
they are to pay frequent visits to the hospitals, the
in which they were to be drawn.
So attempered,
sick-chamber, and the prisons.
They are to make
they could cut through shield and helmet, through
great show of charity, and as they have nothing of
body and soul of the foe.
their own to give to the poor, they are “ to go far
Let, us survey the soldier of Loyola, as he stands
and near” to receive even the “smallest atoms.”
in, the complete and perfect panoply his General
These good deeds will not lose their reward if only
has provided him with.
they take care not to do them in secret.
How admirably harnessed
for the battle he is to fight!
Men will
He has his “ loins
begin to speak of them and say, What a humble,
girt- about with” mental and verbal equivocation ;
pious, charitable order of men these Fathers of the
he has “on the breast-plate of” probabilism; his
Society of Jesus are !
“feet are shod with the preparation of the” Secret
and Dominicans, who were wont to care for the sick
Instructions,
How unlike the Franciscans
“Above all, taking the shield of”
intention, and rightly handling it, he is “ able to
1 See Ephesians vi. 14—17.
THE “ SECRET INSTRUCTIONS.
405
and the poor, but have now forgotten the virtues
only instructors of youth, instead of taking a higher
of a former time, and are grown proud, indolent,
place in the commonwealth of letters, fell back
luxurious, and rich!
into mental decrepitude, and lost their rank in the
Thus the “new-comers,” the
Instructions hint, will supplant the other and older
community of
orders, and will receive “ the respect and reverence
cated to their pupils little besides a knowledge of
of the best and most eminent in the neighbour¬
Latin.
hood.”1
sealed books.
Further, they are enjoined to conduct themselves
nations.
History,
The Jesuits
philosophy, and
communi¬
science
were
They initiated their disciples into
the mysteries of probabilism, and the art of direct¬
very deferentially towards the parochial clergy, and
ing the intention, and the youth trained in these
not to perform any sa,cred function till first they have
paths, when old did not depart from them.
piously and submissively asked the bishop’s leave.
dwarfed the intellect and narrowed the understand¬
This will secure their good graces, and dispose the
ing, but they gained their end. They stamped anew
secular clergy to protect them; but by-and-by, when
the Roman impress upon many of the countries
they have ingratiated themselves with the people,
of Europe.
they may abate somewhat of this subserviency to
They
The second chapter of the Instructions is en¬ titled “What must be done to get the ear and
the clergy. The individual Jesuit takes a vow of poverty,
intimacy of great men?”
To stand well with
but the society takes no such vow, and is quali¬
monarchs and princes is, of course, a matter of such
fied to hold property to any amount.
importance that no stone is to be left unturned
Therefore,
while seeking the salvation of souls, the members
to attain it.
are carefully to note the rich men in the commu¬
expect them to be,
nity.
They must find out who own the estates
members of the Society of Jesus are first of all
in the neighbourhood, and what are their yearly
to imbue princes and great men with the belief
values.
that they cannot dispense with their aid if they
They are to secure these estates by gift,
if possible; if not, by purchase. pens that they
“get
When it hap¬
anything that is
consider¬
The Instructions here, as we should are full and
precise.
The
would maintain the pomp of their State, and the government
of
their
realms.
Should
princes
able, let the purchase be made under a strange
be filled with a conceit of their own wisdom, the
name, by some of our friends, that our poverty
Fathers must find some way of dispelling this
may
still
provincial colleges,
seem
the
greater.”2
And
let
our
“ assign such revenues to some other
more
remote,
that
neither .prince nor
egregious delusion.
They are to surround them
with confessors chosen from their society;
but
by no means are they to bear hard on the con¬
people may discover anything of our profits ”3 4—a
sciences of their royal penitents.
device that combines many advantages.
them “ sweetly and pleasantly,” oftener administer¬
Every day
They must treat
their acres will increase, nevertheless their apparent
ing opiates than irritants.
poverty will be as great as ever, and the flow of
humours, and if, in the matter of marriage, they
They are to study their
benefactions and legacies to supply it will remain
should be inclined—as often happens with princes
undiminished, although the sea into which all these
—to
rivers run will never be full.
they are to smooth their way, by hinting at a dis¬
contract
alliance with their own
kindred,
Among the multifarious duties laid upon the
pensation from the Pope, or finding some palliative
Jesuits, special prominence was given to the in¬
for the sin from the pharmacopoeia of their theo¬
struction of youth.
logy.
It was by this arm that they
They may tell them that such marriages,
“ Whisper
though forbidden to the commonalty, are some¬
it sweetly in their [the people’s] ears, that they are
times allowed to princes, “ for the greater glory of
achieved their most brilliant success. come to catechise the children gratis.”4
Wherever
God.”5
If a monarch is bent on some enterprise—
the Jesuits came they opened schools, and gathered
a war, for example—the issue of which is doubtful,
the youth around them; but despite their zeal in
they are to be at pains so to shape their counsel in
the work of education, knowledge somehow did not
the matter, that if the affair succeeds they shall
increase.
have all the praise,
The intellect refused to expand and the
and if it fails,
the blame
Kingdoms
shall rest with the king alone. And, lastly, when a
like Poland, where they became the privileged and
vacancy occurs near the throne, they are to take
1 Secreta Monita, cap. 1, sec. 1. 2 I hid., cap. 1, sec. 5. 3 Ibid., cap. 1, sec. 6. 4 Ibid. (tr. from a French copy, Lond., 1679), cap. 1, sec.11.
the tried friends of the society, of whom they are
genius to open under their tutelage.
care that the empty post shall be filled by one of enjoined to have, at all times, a list in their posses5 Secreta Monita, cap. 2, sec. 2.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
40 G
sion. It may be well, in order still more to advance
Poland, and France; ” and, the bishops conciliated,
their interests at courts, to undertake embassies at
they may expect to obtain a gift of “ new-erected
times.
This will enable them to draw the affairs
churches, altars, monasteries, foundations, and in
of Europe into their own hands, and to make
some cases the benefices of the secular priests and
princes feel that they are indispensable to them, by
canons, with the preferable right of preaching in all
showing them what an influence they wield at
the great towns.”
the courts of other sovereigns, and especially how
them, they are to be taught that there is no less
great their power is at that of Rome.
And when bishops so befriend
Small ser¬
profit than merit in the deed; inasmuch as, done to
vices and trifling presents they are by no means
the Order of Jesus, they are sure to be repaid with
to overlook. Such things go a great way in opening
most substantial services; whereas, done to the
the hearts of princes.
Be sure, say the Instruc¬
tions, to paint the men whom the prince dislikes in the same colours in which his jealousy and hatred teach him to view them.
Moreover, if the prince
other orders, they will have nothing in return for -their pains “ but a song.” 4 To love their neighbour, and speak well of him, while they held themselves in lowly estimation, was
is unmarried, it will be a rare stroke of policy to
not one of the failings of the Jesuits.
choose a wife for him from among the beautiful and
virtues they were to proclaim as loudly as they did
noble ladies known to their society. “ This is seen,”
the faults of their brother monks.
say the Instructions, “ by experience in the House
tions
of Austria, and in the Kingdoms of Poland and
spirits of those princes who love us, that our order
France, and in many other principalities.” 1
is more perfect than all other orders.”
“We with
must
endeavour,”
remarkable
plainness,
say the Instructions, but
in
the
belief,
commanded
them
to
Their own
Their Instruc¬
“ imprint upon
the
They are
to supplant their rivals, by telling monarchs that no wisdom is competent to counsel in the affairs of
doubtless, that the words would meet the faithful
State but “ours,” and that if they wish to make
eyes of the
their realms
members
of the
Society
of Jesus
only—“ We must endeavour to breed dissension
must
resplendent with
knowledge,
surrender the schools to Jesuit
they
teachers.
among great men, and raise seditions, or anything a
They are especially to exhort princes that they owe
prince would have us to do to please him.
If one
it as a duty to God to consult them in the distribu¬
who is chief Minister of State to a monarch who is
tion of honours and emoluments, and in all appoint¬
our friend oppose us, and that prince cast his whole
ments to places of importance.
favours upon him, so as to add titles to his honour,
ever to have a list in their possession of the names
we must present ourselves before him, and court
of all persons in authority and power throughout
Further, they are
him in the highest degree, as well by visits as all
Christendom, in order that they may change or
humble respect.”2
continue them in their several posts, as may be
Having specified the arts by which princes may
expedient.
But so covertly must this delicate
be managed, the Instructions next prescribe cer¬
business be gone about, that their hand must not
tain methods for turning to account others “ of
be seen in it, nor must it once be suspected that
great authority in the commonwealth, that by their
the change comes from them.5
credit we obtain profit and preferment.” the Instructions,3
“If,” say
“ these lords be seculars,
While slowly and steadily climbing up to the
we
control of kings, and the government of kingdoms,
ought to have recourse to their aid and friendship
they are to study great modesty of demeanour and
against our adversaries, and to their favour in our
simplicity of life.
own suits, and those of our friends, and to their
heart, not on the brow; and the foot must be set
authority and power in the purchase of houses,
down softly that is to be planted at last on the
manors, and gardens, and of stones to build with,
neck of monarchs.
especially in those places that will not endure to
service of princes,” say the Instructions, “ keep but
hear of our settling in them, because the authority
a very little money, and a few movables, contenting
of these lords serveth very much for the appeasing
themselves with a little chamber, modestly keeping
of the populace, and making our ill-willers quiet. ” Nor are they less sedulously to make court to the bishops.
Their authority—great everywhere—is
especially so in some kingdoms, “ as in Germany, 1 Secreta Monita, cap. 2, sec. 5. ^ Ibid., cap. 2, sec. 9, 10. 3 Ibid., cap. sec. 1.
The pride must be worn in the
“Let ours that are. in the
company with persons in humble station; and so being in good esteem, they ought prudently to per¬ suade princes to do nothing without their counsel, whether it be in spiritual or temporal affairs.”6 4 “Prseter cantum.” (Secreta Monita, cap. S, sec. 3.) 5 Secreta Monita, cap. 4, sec. 1—6. 6 Ibid., cap. 4, sec. 5.
407
CHAPTER VIL JESUIT MANAGEMENT OF RICH WIDOWS AND THE HEIRS OF GREAT FAMILIES.
How Rich Widows are to be Drawn to the Chapels and Confessionals of the Jesuits—Kept from Thoughts of a Second Marriage—Induced to Enter an Order, and Bequeath their Estates to the Society—Sons and Daughters of Widows—How to Discover the Revenues and Heirs of Hoble Houses—Illustration from Spain—Borrowing on Bond—The Instructions to be kept Secret—If Discovered, to be Denied—How the Instructions came to Light. The sixth chapter of the Instructions treats “Of the
the wicked idea of marrying again does not enter
Means to acquire the Friendship of Rich Widows.”
her mind, and for this end he is to picture to her
On opening this new chapter, the reflection that
the delightful and fascinating freedom she enjoys in
forces itself on one is—how wide the range of
her widowhood, and over against it he is to place
objects to which the Society of Jesus is able to
the cares, vexations, and tyrannies which a second
devote its attention !
matrimony would probably draw upon her.
beyond
its strength,
beneath its notice !
The greatest matters are not and the smallest are
not
From counselling monarchs,
To
second these representations, the confessor is em¬ powered to promise exemption
from purgatory,
and guiding ministers of State, it turns with equal
should the holy estate of widowhood be persevered
adaptability and dexterity to caring for widows.
in.
The Instructions on this head are minute and elabo¬
part of the object of these solicitudes, the Instruc¬
To maintain this pious frame of mind on the
rate to a degree, which shows the importance the
tions direct that it may be. advisable to have an
society attaches to the due discharge of what it
oratory erected in her house, with an altar, and
owes to this class of its clients.
frequent mass and confession celebrated thereat.
True, some have professed to doubt whether the
The adorning of the altar, and the accompanying
action of the society in this matter be wholly and
rites, will occupy the time of the widow, and pre¬
purely disinterested, from the restriction it puts
vent the thoughts of a husband entering her mind.
upon the class of persons taken under its protec¬
The matter having been conducted to this stage, it
tion.
will be prudent now to change the persons of trust
The Instructions do not say “ widows,” but
“ rich widows.”
But all the more on that account
about
her,
and
to
replace them with
persons
do widows need defence against the arts of chicanery
devoted to the society.
and the wiles of avarice, and how can the Fathers
services must
better accord them such than by taking measures
fession, “so that,” say the Instructions, “knowing
The number of religious
also be increased,
especially con¬
to convey their bodies and their goods alike within
their former
the safe walls of a convent %
tions, the whole may serve as a guide to make
There the cormorants
arid vultures of a wicked world cannot make them their prey. ceed.
But let us mark how they are to pro¬
First, a Father of suitable gifts is to be
selected to begin operations.
He must not, in
accusations,
manners,
and
inclina¬
them obey our wills.”1 These steps will have brought the widow very near the door of a convent.
A continuance a little
longer in the same cautious and skilful tactics is
point of years, exceed middle age; he must have a
all that will be necessary to land her safely within
fresh complexion, and a gracious discourse.
its walls.
He is
to visit the widow, to touch feelingly on her posi¬
The confessor must now enlarge on the
quietude and eminent sanctity of the cloister—how
tion, and the snares and injuries to which it exposes
surely it conducts to Paradise ; but should she be
her, and to hint at the fraternal
care that the
unwilling to assume the veil in regular form, she
society of which he is a member delights to exercise
may be induced to enter some religious order, such
over all in her condition who choose to place them¬
as that of Paulina, “ so that being caught in the
selves under its guardianship.
vow of chastity, all danger of her marrying again
After a few visits
of this sort, the widow will probably appear at one
may be over.”2
of the chapels of the society.
Should it so happen,
queen of the graces, “ without which, it is to be
the next step is to appoint a confessor of their
represented to her, she cannot inherit the king-
body for the widow. be well got over, hopeful.
The great duty of Alms, that
Should these delicate steps
the matter will begin to be
It will be the confessor’s duty to see that
1 Seer eta Monita, cap. 6, sec. 6. 2 Ibid., cap. 6, sec. 8.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
408
dom of heaven,’5 is now to be pressed upon her;
to be persuaded to select a patron, or tutelary saint?
“which alms, notwithstanding, she ought not to
say St. Francis or St. Xavier.
dispose to every one, if it be not by the advice and
made that all they do may be known, by placing
with the consent of her spiritual father.”1
about
Under
Provision is to be
them only persons recommended
by the
this Direction it is easy to see in what exchequer
society.
the lands, manors, and revenues of widows will
the words of the Fathers the fourteenth section of
ultimately be garnered.
this chapter.
Rut the Fathers deemed it inexpedient to leave
VIEW IN ROME :
We must be excused for not giving in That section gives their •protegees
great licence, indeed all licence, “ provided they he
THE VILLA PAMPHILI-DORIA.
such an issue the least uncertain, and accordingly
liberal and well-affected to our society, and that all
the seventh chapter enters largely into the “ Means
things be carried cunningly and without scandal.”
of keeping in our hands
But the one great point to be aimed at is to get
Estates of Widows.”
the Disposition of the
To shut out worldly thoughts,
them to make an entire surrender of their estates
and especially matrimonial ones, the time of such
to the society.
widows must be occupied with their devotions ;
it may be to attain in future the yet higher reward
This is to reach perfection now, and
they are to be exhorted to curtail their expendi¬
of canonisation.
ture and abound yet more in alms “ to the Church
love of kindred, or other motives, that they have
of Jesus Christ.”
not endowed the “poor companions of Jesus” with
appointed them.
A dexterous confessor is to be They are to be frequently visited,
and entertained with pleasant discourse.
They are
But should it so happen, from
all their worldly goods, when they come to die, the preferable claims of “the Church of Jesus Christ” to those of kindred are to be urged upon them,
1 Secreta Monitas cap. vi., sec. 10.
and they are to be exhorted “ to contribute to the
c-
- JTWSi*
VIEW IN HEIDELBERG CASTLE.
tion, representing to them, in the first place, that
tion and seduction unfolded in this chapter differs
the benefits they thus do us are consecrated to
only in its minor points from that which we have
eternity;
already had disclosed to us.
that they shall become thereby perfect
We pass it therefore,
models of piety; that we will have thereof a very
and go on to the ninth chapter, where we find the
particular memory, and that in the next world they
scheme still widening, and wholesale rapacity and
shall have their reward.
extortion, sanctified of course by the end in view,
But if it be objected that
Jesus Christ was born in a stable, and had not
still more openly avowed and enjoined.
where to lay his head, and that we, who are his
ter is enfttled “ Of the Means to Augment the
The chap¬
companions, ought not to enjoy perishing goods, we
Revenues of our Colleges,” and these means, in short,
ought to imprint strongly on their spirits that in
are the astute and persistent deception, circumven¬
truth, at first, the Church was also in the same
tion, and robbery of every class.
1 Secreta Monita, cap. 7, sec. 23.
The net is thrown,
2 Secreta Monita3 cap. 75 sec. 24.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
410
almost without disguise, over the whole community,
rally when any confessor lights upon a wealthy
in order that the goods, heritages, and possessions
person, from whom he hath good hopes of profit,
o£ all ranks—prince, peasant, widow, and orphan—
he is obliged forthwith to give notice of it, and
may be dragged into the convents of the Jesuits.
discover it at his return.”
The world is but a large preserve for the mighty hunters of the Society of Jesus.
4‘Above and before
“They should
also inform themselves exactly
whether there be any hope of obtaining bargains,
all other things,” says this Instruction, “ we ought
goods,
to endeavour our own greatness, by the direction of
exchange for the admission of their sons into our
our superiors, who are the only judges in this case,
society.”3
possessions,4 pious gifts, and the like, in
and who should labour that the Church of God
“ If a wealthy family have daughters only, they
may be in the highest degree of splendour, for the
are to be drawn by caresses to become nuns, in
greater glory of God.”1
which case a small portion of their estate may
In prosecution of this worthy end, the Secret Instructions enjoin the Fathers to visit frequently
be assigned for their use, and the rest will be ours.”
at rich and noble houses, and to “inform them¬
“ The last heir of a family is by all means to be
selves, prudently and dexterously, whether they will
induced to enter the society.
not leave something to our Churches, in order to
relieve his mind from all fear of his parents, he is
the obtaining remission of their sins, and of the
to be taught that it is more pleasing to God that
sins of their kindred.”2
he take this step without their knowledge or con¬
Confessors—and only able
And the better to
and eloquent men are to be appointed as confessors
sent.6
to princes and statesmen—are
to be sent to a distance to pass his novitiate.”
to ascertain
the
“ Such a one,” the Instructions add, “ ought
name and surname of their penitents, the names of
These directions were but too faithfully carried
their kindred and friends, whether they have hopes
out in Spain, and to this among other causes is
of succeeding to anything, and how they mean to
owing
dispose of what they already have,
country.
or may yet
the
depopulation
of
that
once-powerful
A writer who resided many years in the
have; whether they have brothers, sisters, or heirs,
Peninsula, and had the best opportunities of observ¬
and of what age, inclination, and education they
ing its condition, says : “ If a gentleman has two
are.
or three sons and as many daughters, the confessor
And they “ should persuade them that all
these questions do tend much to the clearing of the * state of their conscience.”3
son at home,
There is a refreshing plainness about the follow¬ ing Instructions.
of the family adviseth the father to keep the eldest and send the rest, both sons ana
daughters, into a convent or monastery; praising
They are given with the air of
the monastic life, and saying that to be retired
men who had so often repeated their plea “ for the
from the world is the safest way to heaven.
greater glory of God,” that they themselves had
The fathers of these families, glad of lessening the
come at last to believe it:—
expenses of the house, and of seeing their children
“Our provincial ought to send expert men into
provided for, do send them into the desert place of
all those places where there is any considerable
a convent, which is really the middle of the world.
number of rich and wealthy persons, to the end
Now observe that it is twenty to one that their
they may give their superiors a true and faithful
heir dieth before he marrieth and have children,
account.”
so
“Let the stewards of our college get an exact
the estate and everything else
falls to the
second, who is a professed friar, or nun, and as they
knowledge of the houses, gardens, quarries of stone,
cannot use the expression of meum or tuum, all
vineyards, manors, and other riches of every one
goes that way to the society.
who lives near the place where they reside, and if
reason why many families are extinguished, and
it be possible, what degree of affection they have for us.”
their names quite out of memory, the convent so
“In the next place we should discover every man’s office, and the revenue of it, their possessions,
And this is the
crowded, the kingdom so thin of people, and the Mai's, nuns, and monasteries so rich.”7 Further, the Fathers are counselled to raise large
and the articles of their contracts, which they may surely do by confessions, by meetings, and by enter¬ tainments, or by our trusty Mends,
1 Secreta Monita, cap. 9, sec. 1. 2 Ibid., sec. 4. 3 Ibid., sec. 5.
And gene¬
4 “ Contractus et possessiones ^—leases and possessions. (Lat. et Ital. ed., Roma. Con approv.) 5 Secreta Monita, cap. 9, secs. 7—10. 6 “Ostendendo etiam Deo sacrificium gratissimum fore si parentibus insciis et invitis aufugerit.” (Lat. ed., cap. 9, sec. 8. L'Estrange’s tr., sec. 14.) 7 A Master-Key to Popery, p. 70.
DISCOVERY OF THE sums of money on bond.
“
The advantage of this
411
SECRET INSTRUCTIONS.-
be communicated ; the others, who were ignorant
method is, that when the bond-holder comes to die,
of them in their written form, were brought for¬
it will be easy to induce him to part with the bond
ward to deny on oath that such a book existed,
in exchange for the salvation of his soul.
but their protestations weighed very little against
At all
events, he is more likely to make a gift of the
the overwhelming evidence on the other side.
deed than to bequeath the same amount in gold.
perfect uniformity of the methods followed by the
Another advantage of borrowing in this fashion,
Jesuits in all countries favoured a presumption that
is that their pretence of poverty may still be kept
they acted upon a prescribed rule ; and the exact
up.
Owners of a fourth or of a half of the pro¬
correspondence
between
The
their methods and the
perty of a county, they will still be “ the poor com¬
secret advices showed that this was the rule.
panions of Jesus. ”1
a well-known member of the society, affirmed that
We make but one other quotation from the
the
Gretza,
Secreta Monita was a forgery by a Jesuit
It closes this series of pious
who had been dismissed with ignominy from the
advices and is, in one respect, the most characteristic
society in Poland, find that he published it in 1616.
Secret Instructions.
“ Let the superior keep these secret
But the falsehood of the story was proved by the
advices with great care, and let them not be com¬
discovery in the British Museum of a work printed
municated but to a very few discreet persons, and
in 1596, twenty years before the alleged forgery, in
that only by parts; and let them instruct others
which the Secreta Monita is copied.3
of them all.
with them, when they have profitably served the society.
And then let them not communicate them
Since the first discovery in Paderborn, copies of the Secreta Monita have been found in other libraries,
as rules they have received, but as the effects of
as in Prague, noted above.
their own prudence.
But if they should happen to
have since been published, and in so many languages,
fall into the hands of strangers, who should give
that the idea of collusion is out of the question.
them an ill sense or construction, let them be as¬
These editions all agree with the exception of a few
sured the society owns them not in that sense,
unimportant variations in the reading.4
which shall be confirmed by instancing those of our
private directions,” says M. l’Estrange, “ are quite
order who assuredly know them not.”2 It was some time before the contingency of ex¬
Numerous editions
“ These
contrary to the rules, constitutions, and instructions which this society professeth publicly in those books
posure here provided against actually happened.
it hath printed on this subject.
But in the beginning of the seventeenth century
difficulty we may believe that the greatest part of
So that without
the accidents of war dragged these Secret Instruc¬
their governors (if a very few be excepted especially)
tions from the darkness in which their authors had
have a double rule as well as a double habit—one
hoped to conceal them from the knowledge of the
for their private and particular use, and another to
world.
flaunt with before the world.”5
The Duke of Brunswick, having plundered
the Jesuits’ college at Paderborn in Westphalia, made a present of their library to the Capuchins of the same town.
Among the books which had thus
come into their possession was found a copy of the Secret Instructions.
Another copy is said to
have been discovered in the Jesuits’ college at Prague.
Soon thereafter reprints and translations
appeared in Germany, Holland, France, and Eng¬ land.
The authenticity of the work was denied,
as was to be expected; for any society that was astute enough to compile such a book would be astute enough to deny it.
To only the fourth or
highest order of Jesuits were these Instructions to 1 Secreta Monita, cap. 9, sec. 18, 19. 2 Ibid., cap. 16 (L’Estranged tr.); printed as the Pre¬ face in the Latin edition.
3 Secreta Monita; Lond., 1850. Pref. by H. M. W., p. ix. 4 Among the various editions of the Secreta Monita we mention the following: - Bishop Compton’s translation; Lond., 1669. Sir Roger L’Estrange’s translation; Lond., 1679; it was made from a French copy, printed at Cologne, 1678. Another edition, containing the Latin text with an English translation, dedicated to Sir Robert Walpole, Premier of England: Lond., 1723. This edition says, in the Preface, that Mr. John Schipper, bookseller at Amster¬ dam, bought a copy of the Secreta Monita, among other books, at Antwerp, and reprinted it. The Jesuits bought up the whole edition, a few copies excepted. From one of these it was afterwards reprinted. Of late years there have been several English reprints. One of the copies which we have used in this compend of the book was printed at Rome, in the printing-press of the Propa¬ ganda, and contains the Latin text page for page with a translation in Italian. 5 The Cabinet of the Jesuits’ Secrets Opened; Lond., 1679.
CHAPTER VIII. DIFFUSION OF THE JESUITS THROUGHOUT CHRISTENDOM.
The Conflict Great—the Arms Sufficient—The Victory Sure—Set Free from Episcopal Jurisdiction—Acceptance in Italy—Venice—Spain—Portugal — Francis Xayier—France—Germany—Tlieir First Planting in Austria—In Cologne and Ingolstadt—Thence Spread over all Germany—Their Schools —VIearing of Crosses—Revival of the Popish Faith. The soldiers of Loyola are about to go forth. Before beginning the campaign we see their chief assem¬ bling them and pointing out ijie field on which their prowess is to be displayed. The nations of Christendom are in revolt: it will be theirs to subjugate them, and lay them once more, bound in chains, at the feet of the Papal See. They must not faint; the arms he has provided them with are amply sufficient for the arduous warfare on which he sends them. Clad in that armour, and wielding it in the way he has shown them, they will expel knowledge as night chases away the day. Liberty will die wherever their foot shall tread. And in the ancient darkness they will be able to rear again the fallen throne of the great Hierarch of Rome. But if the service is hard, the wages will be ample. As the saviours of that throne they will be greater than it. And though meanwhile their work is to be done in great show of humility and poverty, the silver and the gold of Christendom will in the end be theirs; they will be the lords of its lands and palaces, the masters of the bodies and the souls of its inhabitants, and nothing of all that the heart can desire will be withholden from them if only they will obey him. The Jesuits rapidly multiplied, and we are now to follow them in their peregrinations over Europe. Going forth in little bands, animated with an entire devotion to their General, schooled in all the arts which could help to further their mission, they planted themselves in a few years in all the countries of Christendom, and made their presence felt in the turning of the tide of Protestantism, which till then had been on the flow. There was no disguise they could not assume, and therefore there was no place into which they could not penetrate. They could enter unheard the closet of the monarch, or the cabinet of the statesman. They could sit unseen in Convocation or General Assembly, and mingle unsuspected in the delibera¬ tions and debates. There was no tongue they could not speak, and no creed they could not profess, and thus there was no people among whom they might not sojourn, and no Church whose membership they
might not enter, and whose functions they might not discharge. They could execrate the Pope with the Lutheran, and swear the Solemn League with the Covenanter. They had their men of learning and eloquence for the halls of nobles and the courts of kings; their men of science and letters for the education of youth; their unpolished but ready orators to harangue the crowd; and their plain, unlettered monks, to visit the cottages of the peasantry and the workshops of the artisan. “ 1 know these men,” said Joseph II. of Austria, writing to Choiseul, the Prime Minister of Louis XV.—“ I know these men as well as any one can do : all the schemes they have carried on, and the pains they have taken to spread darkness over the earth, as well as their efforts to rule and embroil Europe from Cape Finisterre to Spitzbergen ! In China they were mandarins; in France, academicians, courtiers, and confessors; in Spain and Portugal, grandees ; and in Paraguay, kings., Had not my grand-uncle, Joseph I., become emperor, we had in all probability seen in Ger¬ many, too, a Malagrida or an Alvieros.” In order that they might be at liberty to visit what city and diocese they pleased, they were ex¬ empted from episcopal jurisdiction. They could come and go at their pleasure, and perform all their functions without having to render account to any one save to their superior. This arrange¬ ment was resisted at first by certain prelates ; but it was universally conceded at last, and it greatly facilitated the wide and rapid diffusion of the Jesuit corps. Extraordinary success attended their first efforts throughout all Italy. Designed for the common people, the order found equal acceptance from princes and nobles. In Parma the highest families submitted themselves to the “ Spiritual Exercises.” In Venice, Lainez expounded the Gospel of St. John to a congregation of nobles; and in 1542 a Jesuits’ college was founded in that city. The citizens of Montepulciano accompanied Francisco Strada through the streets begging. Their chief knocked at the doors, and his followers received
413
THE JESUITS IN EUROPE. the alms.
In Faenza, they succeeded in arresting
soon they crept back into the kingdom in the gui^e
the Protestant movement, which had been com¬
of traders and operatives.
menced by the eloquent Bernardino 0 chino, and
admitted by the monarch—a service which they
They were at last openly
by the machinery of schools and societies for the
repaid by slaughtering him in the streets of his
relief of the poor, they brought back the population
capital.
to the Papacy.
and agonise, to plunge from woe into crime, and
These are but a few instances out
from crime into woe, till the crowning wickedness
of many of their popularity and success.1 In the countries of Spain and
Under their rule France continued to bleed
Portugal their
of the revocation of the Edict of Nantes laid the
A son
country prostrate; and it lay quiet for more than
of the soil, its founder had breathed a spirit into
half a century, till, recovering somewhat from its
success was
even greater than in Italy.
the order which spread among the Spaniards like an
exhaustion, it lifted itself up, only to encounter the
infection.
terrible blow of its great Revolution.
Some of the highest grandees enrolled
themselves
in
its
ranks.
In
the
province
of
We turn to Germany.
Here it was that the
Valencia, the multitudes that flocked to hear the
Church of Rome had suffered her first great losses,
Jesuit preacher, Araoz, were such that no cathe¬
and here, under the arms of the Jesuits, was she
dral could contain them, and a pulpit was erected
destined to make a beginning
for him in the open air.
which recovered not a little of the ground she
Prom the city of Sala¬
of those victories
manca, where in 1548 they had opened their esta¬
had lost.
blishment in a small, wretched house, the Jesuits
rise of Protestantism.
spread themselves over all Spain.
sons of the men who had gathered round Luther
Two members
A generation had passed away since the It is the year 1550 : the
©f the society were sent to the King of Portugal,
occupy the stage when the van of this great in¬
at his own request:
vading host makes its appearance.
They come in
dispatched to the East
silence; they are plain in their attire, humble and
This was that Francis Xavier who there
submissive in their deportment; but behind them
confessor, Indies.
the one he retained as his
the other he
gained for himself, says Ranke, “the name of an
are the stakes and scaffolds of the persecutor, and
apostle, and the glory of a saint.”
the armies of France and Spain.
At the courts
Their quiet words
of Madrid and Lisbon they soon acquired immense
find their terrible reverberations in those awful
influence.
tempests of war which for thirty years desolated
They were the confessors of the nobles
Germany.
and the counsellors of the monarch. The Jesuits found it more difficult to force their way into France.
Much they wished to found a
Ferdinand I. of Austria, reflecting on the decay into which Roman Catholic feeling had fallen in
college in that city where their first vow had been
Germany, sent to Ignatius Loyola for a few zealous
recorded, but every attempt was met by the deter¬
teachers to instruct the youth of his dominions.
mined opposition of the Parliament and the clergy,
In 1551, thirteen Jesuits, including Le Jay, arrived
The
at Vienna. They were provided with pensions, placed
wars between the Guises and the Huguenots at
in the university chairs, and crept upwards till they
who were jealous of their enormous privileges. length opened a door for them.
Lainez, who by
seized the entire direction of that seminary.
From
this time had become their General, saw his oppor¬
that hour date the crimes and misfortunes of the
tunity, and in 1561 succeeded in effecting his object,
House of Austria.3
although on condition of renouncing the peculiar
A little colony of the disciples of Loyola had,
privileges of the order, and submitting to episcopal
before this, planted itself at Cologne.
jurisdiction.
“The promise was made, but with a
some years that they took root in that city; but the
mental reservation, which removed the necessity of
initial difficulties surmounted, they began to effect
keeping it.”2
a change in public sentiment, which went on till
They immediately founded a college
It was not till
in Paris, opened schools—which were taught by
Cologne became,
clever teachers—and planted Jesuit seminaries at
“'Rome of the North.”
Avignon, Rhodes, Lyons, and other places.
Jesuits became flourishing in Ingolstadt.
Their
as it is sometimes called,
the
About the same time, the They had
intrigues kept the nation divided, and much in¬
been driven away on their first entrance into that
flamed the fury of the civil wars.
university seat, the professors dreading them as
Henry III. was next
rivals; but in 1556 they were recalled, and soon
This crime led
rose to influence, as was to be expected in a city
to their first banishment from France, in 1594; but
where the memory of Ur. Eck was still fresh.
massacred
by
an
agent
of
theirs:
attempted the life of Henry IV*
they
1 Ranke, Hist, of the Popes, bk. ii., sec. 7. 2 Duller, Hist, of the Jesuits, p. 83; Lond., 1845.
3 Ranke, bk. v., sec. 3.
414
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
Their battles, less noisy than liis, were fated to
resort of the most learned men of the German
accomplish much more for the Papacy.
nation.
From these three centres—Vienna, Cologne, and
Wherever the Jesuits came, there was quickly
Xngolstadt—the Jesuits extended themselves over
seen a manifest revival of the Popish faith.
all Germany.
the short space of ten years, their establishments
They established colleges in the chief
cities for the sons of princes and nobles, and they
had become
opened schools in town and village for the instruc-
which they were planted.
In
flourishing in all the countries in Their system of edu-
JESUIT SUCCESSES. days, although it was being freely used by the other
V\f alpurgis. ” 1
members of the family.
They began, too, to distin¬
thus implanted in the schools were, by means of
guish themselves by the use of Popish symbols.. The
preaching and confession, propagated through the whole population.
wearing of crosses and
rosaries is recorded by
itanke as one of the first signs of the setting of the tide toward Pome.
The modes of thought and feeling
While the Jesuits were busy in the seminaries, the
Forgotten rites began to be
Pope operated powerfully in the political sphere.
revived; relics which had been thrown aside and
He had recourse to various arts to gain over the
.
? ';
M vyii XSi
Si:'
1
(See
princes.
p. 417.)
Duke
Albert Y. of Ba vana had a grant made him of one
This
riveted
decision
on
his the
All
416
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
hope to restore the ancient discipline and rule of
were forbidden to appear at court.
their Church without the help of the temporal
drew into retirement, but others purchased their
sovereigns.
Besides Duke Albert, who so powerfully
contributed to re-establish the sway of Rome over
Many with¬
way back by a renunciation of their faith.
By
these and similar arts Protestantism was conquered
all Bavaria, the ecclesiastical princes, who governed
on what may be regarded as its native soil.
so large a part of Germany,
wholly rooted up it maintained henceforward but
threw themselves
heartily into the work of restoration.
The Jesuit
Canisius, a man of blameless life, of consummate
a languishing existence; fruit died in the
If not
its leaf faded and
mephitic air around it,
its
while
address, and whose great zeal was regulated by an
Romanism shot up in fresh strength and robust¬
equal prudence,
ness.
them.
was sent to counsel and guide
Under his management they accepted pro¬
visionally the edicts of the Council of Trent.
They
A whole century of calamity followed the
entrance of the Jesuits into Germany.
The troubles
they excited culminated at last in the Thirty Years’
required of all professors in colleges subscription
War.
to a confession of the Popish faith.
They exacted
of battle continued to roll over the Fatherland.
the same pledge from ordinary schoolmasters and
But the God of their fathers had not forsaken the
medical practitioners.
For the space of a generation the thunder
In many parts of Germany
Germans; it pleased him to summon from the
no one could follow a profession till first he had
distant Sweden, Gustavus Adolphus, and by his
given public proof
of
his orthodoxy.
Bishops
arm to save the remnants of Protestant liberty in
were required to exercise a more vigilant superin¬
that country.
tendence of their clergy than they had done these
sign of subjugating the whole of Germany, and had
twenty years past.
Thus the Jesuits failed in their de¬
The Protestant preachers were
to content themselves with dominating over those
banished; and in some parts the entire Protestant
portions, unhappily large, of which the ecclesiastical
population was driven out.
princes had given them possession at the first.
The Protestant nobles
CHAPTER IX. COMMERCIAL
ENTERPRISES
AND
BANISHMENTS.
England—Poland—Cardinal Hosius—Sigismund III.—Ruin of Poland—Jesuit Missions in the East Indies—Numbers of their Converts—Their Missions in Abyssinia—Their Kingdom of Paraguay—Their Trading Establishments in the West Indies—Episode of Father la Yalette—Bankruptcy—Trial—Their Constitutions brought to Light— Banished from all Popish Kingdoms—Suppressed by Clement XIV.—The Pope Dies Suddenly—The Order Restored by Pius VII.—The Jesuits the Masters of the Pope. Of the entrance of the Jesuits into England, the
which was then unknown to most of the nations of
arts they employed, the disguises they wore, the
Europe.
seditions they sowed,
from the persecution to which they were exposed
the
snares they
laid for
Foreign Protestants fled to it as a refuge
the life of the sovereign, and the plots they con¬
in their native land,
cocted for the overthrow of the Protestant Church,
country their skill, their wealth, and their energy.
bringing to their adopted
we shall have an opportunity of speaking when we
Its trade increased, and its towns grew in popula¬
come to narrate the history of Protestantism in
tion and riches.
Great Britain.
Scottish Protestant congregations existed at Cracow,
Meanwhile, we consider their career
in Poland.
Yilna, and Posnania.1
Cardinal Hosius opened the gates of this country to the Jesuits.
Italian, German, French, and
Till then Poland was a flourishing
country, united at home and powerful abroad.
Its
literature and science during the half-century pre¬
Such was Poland before the
foot of Jesuit had touched its soil. But from the hour that the disciples of Loyola entered the country Poland began to decline.
The
Jesuits became supreme at court; the monarch,
ceding had risen to an eminence that placed Poland on a par with the most enlightened countries of Christendom.
It enjoyed a measure of toleration
1 Krasinski, Rise, Progress, and Decline of the Reformation in Poland, vol. ii,, p. 196; Loud., 1840.
THE JESUITS ABROAD.
Ill
Sigismund III., gave himself entirely up to their
Oviedo, who had entered Ethiopia, wrote thus t&
guidance ; no one could hope to rise in the State who
the Pope :—“ He must be permitted to inform his
did not pay court to them; the education of youth
Holiness that, with the assistance of 500 or 600
was wholly in their hands, and the effects became
Portuguese soldiers, he could at any time reduce
speedily visible in the decay of literature,1 and the
the Empire of Abyssinia to the obedience of the
growing decrepitude of the national mind.
At
Pontificate; and when he considered that it was a
home the popular liberties were attacked in the
country surrounded with territories abounding with
persons of the Protestants, and abroad the nation
the finest gold, and promising a rich harvest of
was humiliated by a foreign policy inspired by the
souls to the Church, he trusted his Holiness would
Jesuits, which drew upon the country the contempt
give the matter further consideration.”4
and hostility of neighbouring powers.
peror of Ethiopia
These evil
was gained
The Em¬
by flatteries and
courses of intrigue and faction within the country,
miracles; a terrible persecution was raised against
and impotent and arrogant policy outside of it, were
the native Christians; thousands were massacred;
persisted in till the natural issue was reached in
but at last, the king having detected the authors of
the partition of Poland.
It is at the door of the
these barbarities plotting against his own life and
Jesuits that the fall of that once-enlightened, pros¬
throne, they were ignominiously expelled the country.
perous, and powerful nation is to be laid.
Having secured the territory of Paraguay,
It concerns us less to follow the Jesuits into
a
Portuguese possession in South America, the Jesuits
those countries which lie beyond the boundaries of
founded a kingdom there, and became its sove¬
Christendom, unless in so far as their doings in
reigns.
these regions may help to throw light on their
kindness, and taught them several useful ‘ arts, but
principles and tactics.
They treated the natives
at first with
In following their steps
by-and-by they changed their policy, and, reducing
among heathen nations and savage races,# it is alike
them to slavery, compelled them to labour for their
impossible to withhold our admiration of their
benefit.
burning zeal and intrepid courage, or our wonder
from the produce of his own toil as much as would
at their prodigiously rapid success.
Dealing out to the Paraguayan peasant
Ho sooner had
suffice to feed and clothe him, the Fathers laid up
the Jesuit missionary set foot on a new shore, or
the rest in large storehouses, which they had erected
preached, by an interpreter it might be, his first
for the purpose.
sermon in a heathen city, than his converts were to
from the knowledge of Europe this seemingly ex¬
be counted in tens of thousands.
haustless source of wealth, that no one else might
Speaking of their
They kept carefully concealed
missions in India, Sacchinus, their historian, says
share its sweets.
that “ ten thousand men were baptised in the space
draw from it those vast sums wherewith they
They continued all the while to
When the Jesuit mission to the carried on their machinations in the Old World.
of one year.”2 3
East Indies was set on foot in 1559, Torrez pro¬
With the gold wrung from the Paraguayan peasants'
cured royal
toil they hired spies, bribed courtiers, opened new
letters
to
the
Portuguese viceroys their
missions, and maintained that pomp and splendour
assistance to the missionaries for the conversion of
of their establishments by which the populace were
the Indians.
dazzled.5
and
governors,
empowering them to lend
This shortened the process wonder¬
All that had to be done was to ascertain
Their establishments in Brazil formed the basis
the place where the natives were assembled for some
of a great and enriching trade, of which Santa Fe
religious festival, and surround them with a troop
and Buenos Ayres were the chief depots.
of soldiers, who,
most noted episode of this kind in their history is
fully.
with levelled muskets,
them the alternative of baptism.
offered
The rite followed
that of Father Lavalette (1756).
But the
He was Visitor-
immediately upon the acceptance of the alternative;
General and Apostolic Prefect of their Missions in
and next day the baptised were taught the sign of
the West Indies.
the cross.
Domingo, Granada,
In this excellent and summary way was
the evangelisation of the island of Goa effected!2 By similar methods did they attempt to plant
“ He organised St. Lucia,
offices in St.
St. Vincent,
and
other islands, and drew" bills of exchange on Paris, London, Bordeaux, Nantes, Lyons, Cadiz, Leghorn,
the Popish faith and establish their own dominion
and Amsterdam.”
in Abyssinia, and also at Mozambique (1560) on
comprising, besides colonial produce, negro slaves,
the opposite coast of Africa.
“ crossed the sea continually.”0
One of the pioneers,
1 Krasinsld, vol. ii., pp. 197,198, 2 Sacchinus, fib. vi., p. 172. 3 Steinmetz, Hist, of the Jesuits, vol. ii., pp. 46—48. Sacchinus, lib. iii., pt 129.
His vessels, loaded with riches, Trading on credit,
4 Steinmetz, lib. ii., p. 59. 5 Duller, Hist, of the Jesuits, pp. 135—138, 6 A Glimpse of the Great Secret Society, p. Ixzixj ecL Lond,, 1872.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
418
they professed to give the property of the society
object, which was to plant their own supremacy on
as security.
the ruin of society.
normal.
Their methods of business were ab¬
Treaties obeyed by other merchants they
disregarded.
Neutrality
laws were
nothing to
them. They hired ships which were used as traders
The Constitutions were one
of the principal grounds of the decree for the ex¬ tinction of the order in France, in 1762.1 That political kingdoms and civil communities
or privateers, as suited them,
and sailed under
should feel the Order a burden too heavy to be
whatever flag was convenient.
At last, however,
borne, is not to be wondered at when we reflect
came trouble to these Fathers, who were making,
that even the Popes, of whose throne it was the
as the phrase is, “the best of both worlds.”
pillar,
The
Brothers Lioncy and Gouffre, of Marseilles, had ac¬
have
repeatedly
decreed
its
extinction.
Strange as it may seem, the first bolt in later times
cepted their bills for a million and a half of livres,
that fell on the Jesuits was launched by the hand
to cover which two vessels had been dispatched for
of Rome.
Martinique with merchandise to the value of two
prohibited them from engaging in trade and making
millions.
Unfortunately for the Fathers, the ships
Benedict IV., by a bull issued in 1741,
slaves of the Indians’.
In 1759, Portugal, finding
itself on the brink of ruin by their intrigues,
were captured at sea by the English. The house of Lioncy and Gouffre asked the superior
shook them off.
This example was soon followed
of the Jesuits in Marseilles for four thousand livres,
in France, as we have already narrated.
as part payment of their debt, to save them from
in Spain, with all its devotion to the Papal See,
Even
bankruptcy.
The Father replied that the society
all the Jesuit establishments were surrounded, one
was not answerable, but he offered the Brothers
night in 1767, with troops, and the whole fraternity,
Lioncy and Gouffre the aid of their prayers, for¬
amounting to 7,000, were caught and shipped off to
tified by the masses which they were about to say
Italy.
for them.
befell them in South America.
The masses would not fill the coffers
Immediately thereafter a similar expulsion Naples, Malta, and
which the Jesuits had emptied, and accordingly
Parma were the next to drive them from their soil.
the merchants appealed to Parliament craving a
The severest blow was yet to come.
decree for payment of the debt.
hitherto their firm friend, yielding at last to the
The appeal was
Clement XIII.,
allowed, and the Jesuits were condemned to honour
unanimous demands of all the Roman Catholic
the bills drawn by their agent.
At this critical
courts, summoned a secret conclave for the suppres¬
moment the General of the society died : delay was
sion of the Order : “ a step necessary,” said the brief
inevitable : the new General sent all the funds he
of his successor, “ in order to prevent Christians
could raise; but before these supplies could reach
rising one against another, and massacring one an¬
Marseilles, Lioncy and Gouffre had become bank¬
other in the very bosom of our common mother the
rupt, involving in their misfortune their connections
Holy Church.”
in all parts of France.
evening before the day appointed for the conclave.
Now that the ruin had come and publicity was
Lorenzo
Clement died suddenly the very
Ganganelli
was elevated to the vacant
inevitable, the Jesuits refused to pay the debt?
chair under the title of Clement XIV.
pleading that they were protected from the claims
nelli was studious, learned, of pure morals, and of
of their creditors by
genuine piety.
their
Constitutions.
cause now came to a public hearing.
The
After several
Ganga¬
From the schoolmen he turned to
the Fathers, forsaking the Fathers he gave himself
pleas had been advanced and abandoned, the Jesuits
to the study of the
took their final
learned on what Rock to fix the anchor of his
stand
in an evil hour for
on the argument which, themselves,
they had put
faith.
Clement XIV.
Holy Scriptures, where he strove
for several years,
forth at first in their defence.
Their rules, they
with honest but mistaken zeal, to reform the Order.
said,
and the fault of
His efforts were fruitless.
forbade them to
trade;
individual members could not be punished upon
On the 21st of July,
1773, he issued the famous bull, “ Dominus ac
the Order : they were shielded by their Constitu¬
Redemptor noster,” by which he “dissolved and
tions.
for ever annihilated the Order as a corporate body,”
The Parliament ordered these documents to
be produced.
They had been kept secret till now.
They were laid before Parliament on the lGth of April, 1761. Jesuits.
The result was disastrous for the
They lost their cause, and became much
more odious than before.
at a moment when it counted 22,000 members.2 The bull justifies itself by a long and formidable list of charges against the Jesuits.
Had this accu¬
sation proceeded from a Protestant pen it might
The disclosure revealed
Jesuitism to men as an organisation based on the most iniquitous maxims, and armed with the most terrible weapons for the accomplishment of their
1 A Glimpse of the Great Secret Society, pp. lxxviii.—Ixxxb Chalotais, Report to Pari, of Bretagne. 2 Duller, Hist, of the Jesuits, p. 151.
SUPPRESSION
AND
RESTORATION OF THE JESUITS.
419
Pave been regarded as not free from exaggeration,
would die soon.
but coming from the Papal chair it must be accepted
began to decline without any apparent cause : his
as the sober truth.
illness increased :
The bull of Clement charged
them with raising various insurrections and rebel¬
In April of the following year he no medicine was of any avail:
and after lingering in torture for months, he died,
lions, with plotting against bishops, undermining
September 22nd, 1774.
the regular monastic orders, and invading pious
death,” says Caraccioli, “ his bones were exfoliated
“Several days before his
foundations and corporations of every sort, not only
and withered like a tree which, attacked at its
in Europe, but in Asia and America, to the danger
roots, withers away and throws off its bark.
of souls and the astonishment of all nations.
It
scientific men who were called in to embalm his
The
and that,
body found the features livid, the lips black, the
instead of seeking to convert the heathen, they had
abdomen inflated, the limbs emaciated, and covered
shown themselves intent only on gathering gold
with violet spots.
and silver and precious jewels.
diminished, and all the muscles were shrunk up,
charged them with engaging in trade,
They had inter¬
The size of the heart was
polated pagan rites and manners with Christian
and the spine was decomposed.
beliefs and worship : they had set aside the ordi¬
body with perfumed and aromatic substances, but
nances of the
nothing could dispel the mephitic effluvia.”2
Church, and substituted opinions
They filled the
which the apostolic chair had pronounced funda¬
The suppression with which Clement XIV. smote
mentally erroneous and evidently subversive of good,
the Society of Jesus was eternal; but the “for ever”
morals.
Tumults,
disturbances,
followed them in all
countries.
violences,
had
In fine, they
of the bull lasted only in actual deed during the brief interval that elapsed between 1773 and 1814.
That
had broken the peace of the Church, and so in¬
short period was filled up with the awful tempest
curably that the Pontificates of liis predecessors,
of the French Revolution—to the fallen thrones
Urban VIII., Clements IX., X., XI., and XII.,
and desecrated altars of which the Jesuits pointed
Alexanders VII. and VIII., Innocents X., XI.,
as the monuments of the Divine anger at the
XII., and XIII., and Benedict XIV., had been
suppression of their Order.
passed
Clement, the Jesuits had neither ceased to exisi
in abortive
attempts to re-establish the
Despite the bull oi
harmony and concord which they had destroyed.
nor ceased to act.
It was now seen that the peace of the Church
world they were energetically active.
Amid the storms that shook the
would never be restored while the Order existed,
lutionary conventions and clubs, in war-councils
In revo¬
and hence the necessity of the bull which dis¬
and committees, on battle-fields they were present,
possessed the Jesuits of “ every office, service, and
guiding with unseen but powerful touch the course
administration;” took
away from them “their
of affairs.
Their maxim is, if despotisms will not
houses, schools, hospitals, estates;” withdrew “all
serve them, to demoralise society and render govern¬
their statutes, usuages, decrees, customs, and ordi¬
ment impossible, and from chaos to remodel the
nances ; ” and pronounced “ all the power of the
world anew.
General, Provincial, Visitors, and every other head
gone
of the same Order, whether spiritual or secular, to
men believed, started up in full force the moment
be for ever annulled and suppressed.” “The present
after, prepared to enter on the work of moulding
ordinance,”
and ruling the nations which had been chastised
said the bull,
in conclusion,
“ shall
Thus the Society of Jesus, which had
out of existence before the Revolution, as
remain in full force and operation from henceforth
but not enlightened.
and for ever.”
turned to the
Nothing but the most tremendous necessity could have made Clement XIV. issue this bull.
He knew
Scarcely had Pius VII. re¬
Vatican, when,
by a bull dated
August 7th, 1814, he restored the Order of Jesus. Thaddeus Borzodzowsky was placed at their head.
well how unforgiving was the pride and how deadly
Once more the brotherhood stalked abroad in their
the vengeance of the Society, and he did not conceal
black birettas.
from himself the penalty he should have to pay for
seminaries, and novitiates began to flourish in all
decreeing its suppression.
the countries of Europe, Ireland and England not
On laying down his pen,
In no long time their colleges,
after having put his name to the bull, he said to
excepted.
those around him that he had subscribed his death-
of “ St. Vincent de Paul,” “ Brothers of the Chris¬
warrant.1
tian Doctrine,” and other societies affiliated with
The Pope was at that time in robust
Their numbers, swelled by the sodalities
health, and his vigorous constitution and temperate habits promised a long life.
But now dark rumours
began to be whispered in Italy that the Pontiff 1 “ Sotto-scriviamo la nostra morte.”
2 All the world believed that Clement had been made to drink the Aqua Tofana, a spring in Perugia more famous than healthful. Some one has said that if Popes are not liable to err, they are nevertheless liable to sudden death.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM
POPE PITJS YU.
(From the Portrait by David.)
the order, became greater, perhaps, than they ever
Chair ” ended—temporarily, at any rate—in the
were at any former period.
And their impor-
enslavement of the Popedom, of which they in™
tance was vastly enhanced by the fact that the
spired the policy, indited the decrees, and wielded
contest between
the power.
the
“ Order ”
and the
“ Papal
421
into the Pra; while a third was forcing itself over
burn in the light of morning when the attention
the rocks by a path intermediate between the two.
of the people,
Instantly the enemy was met on all the points of
worship, was attracted by unusual sounds which
approach.
were heard to issue from the gorge that led into-
A handful of Waldensians sufficed to
who had just ended their united
thrust back along the narrow gorge the line of
the valley.
glittering cuirassed men, who were defiling through
rushed to the gateway that opens from the gorge.
it.
The long file of La Trinita’s soldiers was seen
At the other two points, where bastions of rock
On the instant six brave mountaineers,
and earth had been erected, the fighting was severe,
advancing two abreast, their helmets and cuirasses
and the dead lay thick, but the day at both places
glittering in the light.
went against the invaders.
arrangements, and calmly waited till the enemy
captains were among the slain.
Some of the ablest The number of the
was near.
The six Yaudois made their
The first two Yaudois, holding loaded
soldiers killed was so great that Count La Trinita
muskets, knelt down.
is said to have sat down and wept when he beheld
ready to fire over the heads of the first two.
the heaps of the dead.1
third two undertook the loading of the weapons as
It was matter of astonish¬
The second two stood erect,
The invaders came on.
The
ment at the time that the Waldenses did not pursue
they were discharged.
the invaders, for had they done so, being so much
the first two of the enemy turned the rock they
As
better acquainted with the mountain-paths, not one
were shot down by the two foremost Yaudois.
of all that host would have been left alive to cany
next two of the attacking force fell in like manner
tidings of its discomfiture to the inhabitants of
by the shot of the Yaudois in the rear.
Piedmont.
rank of the enemy presented themselves only to-
Their pastors restrained the victorious
The
The third
Yaudois, having laid it down as a maxim at the
be laid by the side of their comrades.
beginning of the campaign, that they would use
minutes a little heap of dead bodies blocked the
In a few
with moderation and clemency whatever victories
pass, rendering impossible the advance of the accu¬
the “ God of battles” might be pleased to give
mulating file of the enemy in the chasm.
them, and that they would spill no blood unless
Meantime, other Yaudois climbed the mountains
when absolutely necessary to prevent their own
that overhang the gorge in which the Piedmontese
being shed.
The Piedmontese dead was again out
army was imprisoned.
Tearing up the great stones
of all proportion to those who had fallen on the
with which the hill-side was strewn, the Yaudois
other side; so much so, that it was currently said
sent them rolling down upon the host.
in the cities of Piedmont that “ God was fighting
advance from the wall of dead in front, and unable
for the barbets. ” 2
to flee from the ever-accumulating masses behind,
More deeply humiliated and disgraced than ever,
the soldiers were crushed in dozens by the falling
La Trinita led back the remains of his army to its
rocks.
old quarters.
how dreadful!
Well had it been for him if he had
never set foot within the Waldensian territory, and not less so for many of those who followed him,
Unable to
Panic set in : and panic in such a position Wedged together on the narrow
ledge, with a murderous rain of rocks falling on them, their struggle to escape was frightful.
They
jostled one another, and trod each other under foot,
1 Muston, p. 83.
2 Ibid,
Monastier, p, 194.
while vast numbers fell over the precipice, and were
467
PEACE IN THE VAUDOIS VALLEYS. dashed on the rocks or drowned in the torrent,1
waxing cold.
When those at the entrance of the valley, who
lates and monks of Piedmont, to whom the heretics
It stank in the nostrils of the pre¬
were watching the result, saw the crystal of the
had been a free booty.
Angrogna begin about midday to be changed into
manuel Philibert faithfully maintained its stipula¬
blood, “ Ah ! ” said they, “ the Pra del Tor has
tions, the duchess being by his side to counteract
been taken;
La Trinita
has
triumphed;
there
Nevertheless, Duke Em¬
any pressure in the contrary direction.
This peace,
And, indeed, the
together with the summer that was now opening,
count on beginning his march that morning is said
began to slowly efface the deep scars the persecution
to have boasted that by noon the torrent of the
had left on the Valleys; and what further helped
Angrogna would be seen to change colour;
and
to console and reanimate this brave but afflicted
Instead of a pellucid stream,
people, was the sympathy and aid universally ten¬
rolling along on a white gravelly bed, which is its
dered them by Protestants abroad, in particular by
Hows the blood of the Vaudois.”
so in truth it did.
usual appearance at the mouth of the valley, it was
Calvin and the Elector Palatine, the latter address¬
now
ing a spirited letter to the duke on behalf of his
deeply dyed
from
recent slaughter.
But
when the few who had escaped the catastrophe
persecuted subjects.3
returned to tell what had that day passed within
Nothing was more admirable than the spirit of
the defiles of the Angrogna, it was seen that it was
devotion which the Vaudois exhibited all through
not the blood of the Vaudois, but the blood of
these terrible conflicts.
their ruthless invaders, which dyed the waters a£
not less with the voice of prayer and praise, than
the Angrogna.
with the din of arms.
The count withdrew on that same
night with his army, to return no more to the
Their Valleys resounded Their opponents came from
carousing, from blaspheming, from murdering, to engage in battle ; the Waldenses rose from their
Valleys. Negotiations were again resumed, not this time
knees to unsheathe the sword, and wield it in a
through the Count La Trinita, but through Philip
cause which they firmly believed to be that of Him
of Savoy,
Count of Baconis,
and were speedily
to whom they had bent in supplication.
brought to a satisfactory issue.
The Duke of Savoy
their little army went a-field their barbes always
When
had but small merit in making peace with the men
accompanied it, to inspirit the soldiers by suitable
The capitu¬
exhortations before joining battle, and to moderate
lation was signed on the 5th of June, 1561, and its
in the hour of victory a vengeance which, however
whom he found he could not conquer.
first clause granted an indemnity for all offences.
excusable, would yet have lowered the glory of the
It is open to remark that this indemnity was given
triumph.
to those who had suffered, not to those who had
bastion or to the defile, the pastors betook them to
committed the offences it condoned.
The articles
When the fighting men hastened to the
the mountain’s slope, or to its summit, and there
that followed permitted the Vaudois to erect churches
with
in their Valleys, with the exception of two or three
“ Lord, strong and mighty, the Lord mighty in
uplifted
hands supplicated
help from the
of their towns, to hold public worship—in short, to
battle.”
celebrate all the offices of their religion.
All the
enemy were in flight, and the victors had returned
“ ancient franchises, immunities, and privileges, whe¬
from chasing their invaders from their Valleys, the
When the battle had ceased, and the
ther conceded by his Highness, or by his Highness’s
grey-haired pastor, the lion-hearted man of battle,
predecessors,” were renewed, provided they were
the matron, the maiden, the stripling, and the little
vouched by public documents.2
Such was the ar¬
child, would assemble in the Pra del Tor, and while
rangement that closed this war of fifteen months.
the setting sun was kindling into glory the moun¬
The Vaudois ascribed it in great part to the in¬
tain-tops of their once more ransomed land, they
The Pope
would raise their voices together, and sing the old
designated it a “ pernicious example,” which he
war-song of Judah, in strains so heroic that the
fluence of the good Duchess Margaret.
great rocks around them would send back the
feared would not want imitators in those times
O
when the love of many to the Roman See w^,s
thunder of their praise in louder echoes than those of the battle whose triumphant issue they were
1 2
Leger, part ii., p. 37. Muston, p. 85. The Articles of Capitulation are given in full in Leger, part ii., pp. 38—40.
celebrating.
3 Leger, part ii., p. 41.
468
CHAPTER VIII. WALDENSPAN COLONIES IN CALABRIA AND APULIA.
An Inn at Turin-Two Waldensian Youths—A Stranger—Invitation to Calabria—The Waldenses Search the Land— They Settle there—Their Colony Flourishes—Build Towns—Cultivate Science—They Hear of the ReformationPetition for a Fixed Pastor—Jean Louis Paschale sent to them—Apprehended—Brought in Chains to Naples —Conducted to Rome. One day, about the year 1340, two Waldensian
the rising ground, walnuts and every fruit-tree.
youths were seated in an inn in Turin, engaged in
Everywhere were seen rich arable land and few
earnest conversation respecting
labourers.”
spects.
their home pro¬
Shut up in their valleys, and cultivating
A considerable body of emigrants set
out for this new country.
The young men were
with toil their somewhat sterile mountains, they
accompanied to their future homes with partners.
sighed for wider limits and a more fertile land.
They carried with them the Bible in the Romance
“ Come with me,” said a stranger, who had been
version, “ that holy ark of the New Covenant, and
listening unperceived to their discourse,
of everlasting peace.”
“ Come
with me, and I will give you fertile fields for your barren rocks.”
The person who now courteously
The conditions of
their emigration offered a
reasonable security for the free
and undisturbed
addressed the youths, and whose steps Providence
exercise of their worship.
“ By a convention with
had directed to the same hotel with themselves, was
the local seigneurs, ratified later by the King of
a gentleman from Calabria, at the southern ex¬
Naples, Ferdinand of Arragon, they were permitted
tremity of the Italian Peninsula.
to govern their own affairs, civil and spiritual, by
On their return to the Valleys the youths re¬
their own magistrates, and their own pastors.”1
ported the words of the stranger, and the flattering
Their first settlement was near the town of Mont-
hopes he had held out should they be willing to
alto.
migrate to this southern land, where skies more
Sexto, which afterwards became the capital of the
Half a century later rose the city of San
genial, and an earth more mollient, would reward
colony. Other towns and villages sprang up, and the
their labour with more bounteous harvests.
The
region, which before had been thinly inhabited, and
elders of the Vaudois people listened not without
but poorly cultivated, was soon transformed into a
interest.
The population of their Valleys had
smiling garden.
The swelling hills were clothed
recently received a great accession in the Albigen-
with fruit-trees, and the plains waved with luxuriant
sian refugees, who had escaped from the massacres
crops.
of Innocent III. in the south of France; and the
So struck was the Marquis of Spinello with
Waldenses, feeling themselves overcrowded, were
the prosperity and wealth of the settlements, that
prepared to welcome any fair scheme that promised
he offered to cede lands on his own vast and fertile
an enlargement of their boundaries.
But before
estates where these colonists might build cities
acceding to the proposition of the stranger they
and plant vineyards.
thought it advisable to send competent persons to
authorised them to surround with a wall; hence
examine this new and to them unknown land.
its name, La Guardia.
The Vaudois explorers returned with a flattering
height near the sea, soon became populous and
account of the conditions and capabilities of the
opulent.2
country they had been invited to occupy.
One of
their
towns he
This town, situated on a
Com¬
Towards the close of the same century, another
pared with their own more northern mountains,
body of Vaudois emigrants from Provence arrived
whose summits Winter covers all the year through
In the south of Italy.
with his snows, whose gorges are apt to be swept
Apulia, not far from their Calabrian brethren, vil¬
The new-comers settled in
by furious gusts, and their sides stripped of their
lages and towns arose, and the region speedily put
com and vines by devastating torrents, Calabria
on a new face under the improved arts and hus¬
was a land of promise.
“ There are beautiful
bandry of the colonists.
Their smiling homes,
describing this
which looked forth from amid groves of orange and
settlement, “ clothed with all kinds of fruit-trees
myrtle, their hills covered with the olive and the
hills,” says the historian spontaneously
springing
Gilles, up
according
to
their
situation—in the plains, vines and chestnuts; on
1 Muston, p. 37.
2 Leger, part ii., p. 333.
THE CALABRIAN SETTLEMENTS.
469
■vine, their corn-fields and pasture-lands, were the
how different the aspect of the one from that of
marvel and the envy of their neighbours.
the other!
In 1500 there arrived in Calabria yet another
The soil, touched by the plough of
Vaudois, seemed to feel a charm that made it open
emigration from the Valleys of Pragelas and Frais-
its bosom and yield a tenfold: increase.
sini&res.
tended by Vaudois hands bore richer clusters, and
This third body of colonists established
The vine
themselves on the Volturata, a river which flows
strove in generous rivalry with the fig and the
from
olive to outdo them in enriching with its produce
the Apennines into the
Bay of Tarento.
With the increase of their numbers came an increase
the Vaudois board.
of prosperity to the colonists.
and order of their towns ; and the air of happiness
Their neighbours,
And how delightful the quiet
who knew not the secret of this prosperity, were
on the faces of the people ! And how sweet to listen
lost in wonder and admiration of it.
to the bleating of the flocks on the hills, the lowing
The physical
attributes of the region occupied by the emigrants
of the herds in the meadows, the song of the reaper
differed in no respect from those of their own
and grape-gatherer, and the merry voices of children
lands, both were placed under the same sky, but
at play around the hamlets and villages t
For
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
470 about
200
years
these
colonies
continued
to
neighbours.
Still the priests could not help ob¬
serving that the manners of these northern settlers
Nourish. “ It is a curious circumstance/’ says the historian
were, in many things, peculiar and strange.
McCrie,
eschewed revels and fetes; they had their children
“ that the first gleam of light,
at the
They
revival of letters, shone on that remote spot of
taught by foreign schoolmasters ; in their churches
Italy where the Yaudois had found an asylum.
was neither image nor lighted taper; they never
Petrarch first acquired a knowledge of the Greek
went on pilgrimage; they buried their dead with¬
tongue from Barlaam, a monk of Calabria; and
out the aid of the priests ; and never were they
Boccaccio was taught it from Leontius Pilatus, who
known to bring a candle to the Yirgin’s shrine, or
was a hearer of Barlaam, if not also a native of
purchase a mass for the help of their dead relatives,,
the same place.”1
Muston says that “the sciences
flourished among them.” 2
These peculiarities were certainly startling, but one
The day of the Renais-
thing went far to atone for them—they paid with
The flight of scholars,
the utmost punctuality and fidelity their stipulated
which was to bear with it the seeds of ancient
tithes; and as the value of their lands was yearly
learning to the West, had not yet taken place ; but
increasing, there was a corresponding yearly in¬
sance had not yet broken.
the Yaudois of Calabria would seem to have antici¬
crease in both the tithe due to the priest and the
pated that great literary revival.
rent payable to the
They had brought
landlord,
and neither was
with them the Scriptures in the Romance version.
anxious to disturb a state of things so beneficial
They possessed doubtless the taste and genius for
to himself,
which the Romance nations were then famous;
more advantageous.3
and which was every day becoming
and, moreover, in their southern settlement they
But in the middle of the sixteenth century the
may have had access to some knowledge of those
breath of Protestantism from the North began to
sciences which the Saracens then so assiduously
move over these colonies.
cultivated; and what so likely, with their leisure
them told them of the synod which had been held
and wealth,
in Angrogna in 1532, and which had been as the
as that these Yaudois should turn
The pastors who visited
their attention to letters as well as to husbandry,
“ beginning of months ” to the ancient Church of
and make their adopted country vocal with the
the Yalleys.
strains of that minstrelsy with which Provence and
communicate to the Christians of Calabria.
Dauphine had resounded so melodiously, till its
Germany, in France, in Switzerland, and in Den¬
music was quenched at once and for ever by the
mark the old Gospel had blazed forth in a splen¬
murderous arms of Simon de Montfort %
dour unknown to it for ages.
But here
More glorious tidings still did they In
The Lamp of the
we can only doubtfully guess, for the records of
Alps was no longer the one solitary light in the
this interesting people are scanty and dubious.
world: around it was a circle of mighty torches,
These colonists kept up their connection with
whose rays, blending with those of the older lumi¬
the mother country of the Yalleys, though situated
nary, were combining to dispel the night from
at the opposite extremity of Italy. their
faith,
which
was
the
To keep alive
connecting
link,
Christendom.
At the hearing of these stupendous
things their spirit revived : their past conformity
pastors were sent in relays of two to minister in
appeared to them like cowardice;
the Churches of Calabria and Apulia; and when
take part in the great work of the emancipation of
they had fulfilled their term of two years they
the nations, by making open confession of the truth ;
were replaced by other two.
and no longer content with the mere visit of a
The barbes, on their
they, too, would
way back to the Yalleys, visited their brethren in
pastor, they petitioned the mother Church to send
the Italian towns; for at that time there were few
them one who might statedly discharge amongst
cities in the peninsula in which the Yaudois were
them the office of the holy ministry.4
The grandfather of the Yaudois
There was at that time a young minister at
historian, Gilles, in one of these pastoral visits to
Geneva, a native of Italy, and him the Church of
Yenice, was assured by the Waldenses whom he
the Yalleys designated to the perilous but honour-
not to be found.
there conversed with, that there were not fewer than 6,000 of their nation in that city.
Fear had
not yet awakened the suspicions and kindled the hatred of the Romanists, for the Reformation was not yet come.
Nor did the Waldenses care to
thrust their opinions upon the
1M? Crie, Italy, pp. 7,8.
notice of
their
2 Muston, Israel of the Alps, p. 38.
3 Perrin, Histoire des Vaudois, p. 197. Monastier, pp. 203, 204. 4 Muston, p. 38. Monastier and Mr Crie say that the application for a pastor was made to Geneva, and that Paschale set out for Calabria, accompanied by another minister and two schoolmasters. It is probable that the application was made to Geneva through the intermediation of the home Church.
LOUIS PASCHALE. able post.
His name was Jolin Louis Paschale;
earth,
471
which was
exchanged on his
arrival at
lie was a native of Coni in the Plain of Piedmont.
Naples for a deep, damp dungeon,3 the stench of
By birth a Pomanist, his first profession was that
which almost suffocated him.
of arms; but from a knight of the sword he had
On the 16th of May, 1560, Paschale was taken
become, like Loyola, but in a truer sense, a knight
in chains to Pome, and imprisoned in the Torre
of the Cross.
He had just completed his theo¬
logical studies at Lausanne.
He was betrothed to
di Nona, where he was thrust into a cell not less noisome than that which he had occupied at Naples.
a young Piedmontese Protestant, Camilla Guerina.1
His brother, Bartolomeo, having obtained letters
“ Alas ! ” she sorrowfully exclaimed, when he inti¬
of recommendation, came from Coni to procure, if
mated to her his departure for Calabria, “ so near
possible, some mitigation of his fate.
to Pome and so far from me.”
They parted, never¬
view between the two brothers, as told by Bar¬
The young minister carried with him to Calabria
to see him,” says he, “ with his bare head, and his
more to meet on earth.
tolomeo, was most affecting.
the energetic spirit of Geneva.
His preaching was
The inter¬
“ It was quite hideous
hands and arms lacerated by the small cords with
with power; the zeal and courage of the Calabrian
which he was bound, like one about to be led to
flock revived, and the light formerly hid under a
the gibbet.
bushel was now openly displayed.
to the ground.
Its splendour
On advancing to embrace him I sank ‘ My brother,’ said he, ‘ if you are
attracted the ignorance and awoke the fanaticism'
a Christian, why do you distress yourself thus! Do
of the region.
you know that a leaf cannot fall to the ground
The priests, who had tolerated a
heresy that had conducted itself so modestly, and
without the will of God?
paid its dues so punctually, could be blind no
Christ
longer.
worthy to be compared with the glory to come.’ ”
The Marquis of Spinello, who had been
Jesus, for
the
Comfort yourself in
present troubles are
not
the protector of these colonists hitherto, finding
His brother,
his kindness more than repaid in the flourishing
fortune if only he would
condition
life.
Even this token of affection could not move
him.
“ Oh, my brother ! ” said he, “ the danger
of his states, was compelled to move
against them.
“That dreadful thing, Lutheran¬
a Pomanist,
offered
him half his
recant, and save his
ism,” he was told, “ had broken in, and would soon
in which you are involved gives me more distress
destroy all things.”
than all that I suffer.”4
The marquis summoned the pastor and his flock before him.
After a few moments’ address from
He wrote to his affianced bride with a
pen
which, if it softened the picture of his own great
Paschale, the marquis dismissed the members of
sufferings, freely expressed the affection he bore
the congregation with a sharp reprimand, but the
for her, which “ grows,” said he, “ with that
pastor he threw into the dungeons of Foscalda.
feel for God.”
The bishop of the diocese next took the matter
in Calabria.
Into his own hands, and removed Paschale to the
letter which he addressed to them, “ I feel my joy
t
Nor was he unmindful of his flock “ My state is this,” says he, in a
prison of Cosenza, where he remained shut up
increase every day, as I approach nearer the hour
during eight months.
in which I shall be offered a sweet-smelling sacri¬
The Pope heard of the case, and delegated Car¬
fice to the Lord Jesus Christ, my faithful Saviour;
dinal Alexandrini, Inquisitor-General, to extinguish
yea, so inexpressible is my joy that I seem to
the heresy in the Kingdom of Naples.2 drini ordered Paschale
Alexan¬
to be removed from the
Castle of Cosenza, and conducted to Naples.
On
myself to be free from captivity, and am prepared to die for Christ,
and not only once,
but ten
thousand times, if it were possible; nevertheless,
the journey he was subjected to terrible sufferings.
I persevere in imploring the Divine assistance by
Chained to a gang of prisoners—the handcuffs so
prayer, for I am convinced that man is a miserable
tight that they entered the flesh—he spent nine
creature when left to himself, and not upheld and
•days on the road, sleeping at night on the bare
directed by God.”5
1 MrCrie. p. 324.
2 Monastier, p. 205.
3 M? Crie, p. 325. 4 Ibid., pp. 325—327.
5 Ibid., pp. 326,327,
472
CHAPTER IX. EXTINCTION OF WALDENSES IN CALABRIA.
Arrival of Inquisitors in Calabria—Flight of the Inhabitants of San Sexto—Pursued and Destroyed—La Guardia —Its Citizens Seized—Their Tortures—Horrible Butchery—The Calabrian Colony Exterminated—Louis Paschale—His Condemnation—The Castle of St. Angelo—The Pope, Cardinals, and Citizens—The Martyr—His Last Words—His Execution—His Tomb. Leaving the martyr for a little while in his dun¬
them to their hiding-places, in the thickets and the
geon at Rome, we shall return to his flock in
caves of the mountains, they slaughtered many of
Calabria, on whom the storm which we saw gather¬
them;
ing had burst in terrific violence.
bloodhounds, as
When it was known that Protestant ministers
others, who escaped,
they pursued with
if they had been
wild beasts.
Some of these fugitives scaled the craggy summits
had been sent from Geneva to the Waldensian
of the Apennines, and hurling down the stones on
Churches in Calabria, the Inquisitor-General, as
the soldiers who attempted to follow them, com¬
already mentioned,
and two Dominican monks,
pelled them to desist from the pursuit.
Yalerio
and Alfonso
Malvieino
TJrbino,
were
Alexandrini dispatched a messenger to Naples
dispatched by the Sacred College to reduce these
for more troops to quell what he called the rebellion
Churches to the obedience of the Papal See, or
of the Yaudois.
trample them out.
by coming in person with an army.
They arrived at San Sexto, and
The viceroy obeyed the summons He attempted
assembling the inhabitants, they assured them no
to storm the fugitives now strongly entrenched in
harm was intended them, would they only dismiss
the great mountains, whose summits of splintered
their Lutheran teachers and come to mass.
The
rock, towering high above the pine forests that
bell was rung for the celebration of the Sacrament,
clothe theit sides, presented to the fugitives an
but the citizens, instead of attending the service,
almost inaccessible retreat.
left the town in a body, and retired to a neighbour¬
to
ing wood.
nothing but their return within the pale of the
Concealing their chagrin, the inquisitors
emigrate;
but
The Waldenses offered
the viceroy would
listen to
took their departure from San Sexto, and set out
Church of Rome.
for La Guardia, the gates of which they locked
lives rather than accept peace on such conditions.
They were prepared to yield them
behind them when they had entered, to prevent a
The viceroy now ordered his men to advance ; but
second flight.
the shower of rocks that met his soldiers in the
Assembling the inhabitants, they
told them that their co-religionists of San Sexto
ascent hurled them to the bottom, a discomfited
had renounced their errors, and dutifully attended
mass in which the bruised, the maimed, and the
mass, and they exhorted them to follow their good
dying were confusedly mingled with the corpses of
example, and return to the fold of the Roman
the killed.
shepherd; warning them, at the same time, that
The viceroy, seeing the difficulty of the enter¬
should they refuse they would expose themselves as
prise, issued an edict promising a free pardon to all
heretics to the loss of goods and life.
The poor
bandits, outlaws, and other criminals, who might
people taken unawares, and believing what was
be willing to undertake the task of scaling the
told them, consented to hear mass; but no sooner
mountains and attacking the strongholds of the
was the ceremony ended, and the gates of the town
Waldenses.
opened, than they learned the deceit which had been
assembled a mob of desperadoes, who were but too
practised upon them.
In obedience to this summons, there
Indignant, and at the same
familiar with the secret paths of the Apennines.
time ashamed of their own weakness, they resolved
Threading their way through the woods, and clam¬
to leave the place in a body, and join their brethren
bering over the great rocks, these assassins rushed
in the woods, but were withheld from their purpose
from every side on the barricades on the summit,
by the persuasion and promises of their feudal
and butchered the poor Yaudois.
superior, Spinello.
inhabitants of San Sexto exterminated, some dying
The Inquisitor-General, Alexandrini, now made request for two companies of men-at-arms, to enable him to execute his mission.
The aid requested
Thus were the
by the sword, some by fire, while others were torn by bloodhounds, or perished by famine.1 While the outlaws of the Neapolitan viceroy
was instantly given, and the soldiers were sent in pursuit of the inhabitants of San Sexto.
Tracking
1 Leger, part ii., p. 333. M?Crie, p. 303. Muston, p. 41.
THE TBAGEDY OF MONTALTO.
473
were busy in tlie mountains, the Inquisitor-General
to martyrdom and death are incredible.
and his monks were pursuing their work of blood
them at their death professed themselves of the
at La Guardia.
same faith with us, but the greater part died in
The military force at their com¬
Some of
mand not enabling them to take summary measures
their cursed obstinacy.
with the inhabitants, they had recourse to a strata¬
death with cheerfulness, but the young exhibited
gem.
Enticing the citizens outside the gates, and
placing
soldiers
in ambush,
they succeeded in
symptoms of fear.
All the old met their
I still shudder while I think of
the executioner with the bloody knife in his teeth,
getting into their power upwards of 1,600 persons.1
the dripping napkin in his hand, and his arms be¬
Of these, seventy were sent in chains to Montalto,
smeared with gore, going to the house, and taking
and tortured, in the hope of compelling them to
out one victim after another, just as a butcher does
accuse themselves of practising shameful crimes in
the
their religious assemblies.
bodies were quartered,
Ho such confession,
sheep
which
he
means
to
kill.”3
and stuck
Their
up on pikes
however, could the most prolonged tortures wring
along the high road leading from Montalto to
from
Chateau-Yilar, a distance of thirty-six miles.
them.
“ Stefano
Carlino,”
says
MSCrie,
“was tortured till his bowels gushed out;” another
prisoner,
named Yerminel,
and
“was kept
during eight hours on a horrid instrument called
Numbers of men and women were burned alive, many were
drafted off to the
Spanish galleys,
some made their submission to Borne, and a few,
the hell, but persisted in denying the atrocious
escaping from the scene of these horrors, reached,
calumny.”2
after infinite toil, their native Yalleys, to tell that
Some were thrown from the tops of
towers, or precipitated over cliffs; others were torn
the once-flourishing Waldensian colony and Church
with iron whips, and finally beaten to death with
in Calabria no longer existed, and that they only
fiery brands; and others, smeared with pitch, were
had been left to carry tidings to their brethren of
burned alive.
its utter extermination.
But these horrors pale before the bloody tragedy
Meanwhile, preparations had been made at Borne
of Montalto, enacted by the Marquis di Buccianici,
for the trial of Jean Louis Paschale.
whose zeal was quickened, it is said, by the promise
of September, 1560,
On the 8th
he was brought out of his
of a cardinal’s hat to his brother, if he would clear
prison, conducted to the Convent della Minerva,
Calabria of heresy.
One’s blood runs cold at the
and cited before the Papal tribunal.
perusal of the deed.
It was witnessed by a servant
fessed his Saviour, and, with a serenity to which
He con¬
to Ascanio Caraccioli, himself a Boman Catholic,
the countenances of his judges were strangers, he
and described by him in a letter, which was pub¬
listened to the sentence of death, which was carried
lished in Italy, along with other accounts of the
into execution on the following day.
horrible Mc.Crie.
by
Standing upon the summit of the Janiculum
“Most illustrious sir, I have now to
Mount, vast crowds could witness the spectacle.
transaction,
and
has been
quoted
inform you of the dreadful justice which began to
In front the Campagna spreads out its once glorious
be executed on these Lutherans early this morning,
but now desolated bosom; and winding through it
And, to tell you the
like a thread of gold is seen the Tiber, while the
truth, I can compare it to nothing but the slaughter
Apennines sweeping round it in craggy grandeur
being the 11th of June. of so many sheep.
They were all shut up in one
enclose it like a vast wall.
Immediately beneath,
The executioner went,
uprearing her domes and monuments and palaces,
and bringing out one of them, covered his face with
with an air that seems to say, “I sit a queen,” is the
house as in a sheep-fold.
a napkin, or bendct, as we call it, led him out to a
city of Borne.
field near the house, and causing him to kneel
macy amid the other fabrics of the Eternal City,
down, cut his throat with a knife.
is the scarred and riven yet Titanic form of the
Then, taking
Yonder, asserting an easy supre¬
off the bloody napkin, he went and brought out
Coliseum, with its stains of early Christian blood
another, whom he put to death after the same
not yet washed out.
manner.
guilt and doom, lies the Palatine, once the palace
In this way the whole number, amount¬
By its side, the partner of its
I leave
of the world’s master, now a low mound of ruins,
you to figure to yourself the lamentable spectacle,
with its row of melancholy cypresses, the only
for I can scarcely refrain from tears while I write;
mourners on that site of vanished glory and fallen
ing to eighty-eight men, were butchered.
nor was there any person,
after witnessing the
execution of one, could stand to look on a second.
empire.
Hearer, burning in the midday sun, is the
proud cupola of St. Peter’s, flanked on the one side
The meekness and patience with which they went
1 Monastier, p. 206.
35
*
2 M?Crie, p. 304.
3 Pantaleon, Rerum in Rccles. Gest. Hist., f. 337, 338. Be Porta, tom. ii., pp. 309, 312—ex M? Crie, pp. 305, 306.
HISTOBY OF PBOTESTAISTTISM.
474
by the buildings of the Inquisition, and on the
Papal body.
other by the huge Mole of Hadrian, beneath whose
row on row, the nobility and beauty of Rome.
Behind the ecclesiastics are seated*
gloomy ramparts old Tiber rolls sluggishly and
Plumes wave, stars gleam, and seem to mock the
sullenly along.
frocks and cowls gathered near them, whose wearers*
hear?
But what shout is this which we
Why does Rome keep holiday?
Why do
however, would not exchange these mystic gar¬ ments
for
piazza eager crowds rush forth, and uniting in one
them.
The vast sweep of the Court of St. Angela
overwhelming and surging stream, they are seen
is densely occupied.
rolling across the Bridge of St. Angelo, and press¬
from end to end with a closely-wedged mass of
ing in at the gates of the old fortress, which are
citizens, who have come to see the spectacle.
all her bells ring?
Lo! from every street and
all
the bravery that
blazes around
Its ample floor is covered In.
VIEW OF THE INTERIOR OF ST. JOHN LATERAN, ROME.
thrown wide open to admit this mass of human
the centre of the throng, rising a little way over
beings.
the sea of human heads, is seen a scaffold, with an
Entering the court-yard of the old castle, an im¬ posing sight meets the eye.
What a confluence of
ranks, dignities, and grandeurs!
In the centre is
iron stake, and beside it a bundle of faggots. A slight movement begins to be perceptible in the crowd beside the gate.
Some one is entering.
placed a chair, the emblazonry of which tells us that
The next moment a storm of hissing and execra¬
it claims to rise in authority and dignity over the
tion salutes the ear.
throne of kings.
who has just made his entrance is the object of
The Pontiff, Pius IV., has already
It is plain that the person
taken his seat upon it, for he has determined to be
universal dislike.
present at the tragedy of to-day.
floor of the court, as he comes forward, tells how
Behind his chair,
The clank of irons on the stone-
in scarlet robes, are his cardinals and counsellors,
heavily his limbs are loaded with fetters.
with many dignitaries besides in mitres and cowls,
is still young; but his face is pale and haggard
He-
ranged in circles, according to their place in the’
with suffering.
He lifts his eyes, and with eoun-
MARTYRDOM OF FASCHALE.
475
tenance undismayed surveys the vast assembly, and
executioners came round him, and having strangled
the dismal apparatus that stands in the midst of it,
him, they kindled the faggots, and the flames blazing
waiting its victim.
up speedily reduced his body to ashes.
For once
his brow; the serene light of deep, untroubled peace
the Pope had performed his function.
With his
beams in his eye.
key of fire, which he may truly claim to carry, he
There sits a calm courage on He mounts the scaffold, and
stands beside the stake.
Every eye is now turned,
had opened the celestial doors, and had sent his
not on the wearer of the tiara, but on the man
poor prisoner
who is clad in the sanbenito.
Inquisition, to dwell in the palace of the sky.
“ Good
people,”
dungeons of the
So died, or rather passed into the life eternal, Jean
says the martyr—and the whole assembly keep silence—“ I am come here to die for confessing the
from the dark
Louis
Paschale, the Waldensian missionary and
GROUP OF ROMAN PEASANT’S.
doctrine of my Divine Master and Saviour, Jesus
pastor of the flock in Calabria.
Christ.”
collected and thrown into the Tiber, and by the
Then turning to Pius IV. he arraigned
His ashes were
him as the enemy of Christ, the persecutor of his
Tiber they were borne to the Mediterranean.
people, and the Antichrist of Scripture, and con¬
this was the grave of the preacher-martyr, whose
cluded by summoning him and all his cardinals to
noble bearing and undaunted courage before the
answer for their cruelties and murders before the
very Pope himself, gave added value to his splendid
throne of the Lamb.
testimony for the Protestant cause.
u At his words,” says the
historian Crespin, “ the people were deeply moved,
consume the marble,
and
down the monumental pile;
the Pope and the
cardinals gnashed their
teeth.”1 The inquisitors hastily gave the signal. 1 Crespin, Hist, des Martyrs, fol. 506—516. part i., p. 204, and part ii., p. 335.
The
violence
And
Time may
or war may drag
“The pyramids that cleave heaven’s jewelled portal; Elean Jove’s star-spangled dome; the tomb Where rich Mausolus sleeps—are not immortal.” 2
Leger,
2
Sextus Propertius (Cranstoun’s translation), p. 119.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
476
But the tomb of the far-sounding sea to which the ashes final
of
display
Faschale were of
impotent
committed, with a rage,
was
indeed
a
nobler mausoleum than ever Rome raised to any of her Pontiffs, and it will remain through all the ages, until time shall be no more.
CHAPTER X. THE YEAR OF THE
PLAGUE.
Peace—Re-occupation of their Homes—Partial Famine—Contributions of Foreign Churches—Castrocaro, Governor of the Valleys—His Treacheries and Oppressions—Letter of Elector Palatine to the Duke—A Voice raised for Toleration—Fate of Castrocaro—The Plague—Awful Ravages—lO^OOO Deaths—Only Two Pastors Survive— Ministers come from Switzerland, &c.—Worship conducted henceforward in French. A whole century nearly wore away between the
hausted, and starvation stared them in the face.
trampling out of the Protestant Church in Calabria,
Before the treaty of peace had been signed, the
and the next great persecution which befel that
time of sowing was past, and when the autumn
venerable people whose tragic history we are record¬
came there was scarcely anything to reap.
ing.
We can touch on a few only, and these the
destitution was further aggravated by the fugitives
more prominent, of the events which fill up the
from Calabria, who began about this time to arrive
interval.
in the Yalleys.
The war that La Trinita, so ingloriously for him¬
Escaping with nothing but their
lives, they presented themselves in hunger and
self, had waged against the Waidenses, ended, as
nakedness.
we have seen, in a treaty of peace,
receive them,
which was
Their
Their brethren opened their arms to and though their own necessities
signed at Cavour on the 5th of June, 1561, be¬
were great, they nevertheless shared with them
tween Philip of Savoy and the deputies of the
the little they had.
Yalleys.
But though the cloud had rolled past, it
The tale of the suffering now prevailing in the
had left numerous and affecting memorials of the
Yalleys was known in other countries, and evoked
desolation it
the sympathy of their Protestant brethren.
had inflicted.
The inhaoitants de¬
Calvin,
scended from the mountains to exchange the weapons
with characteristic promptness and ardour, led in
of war for the spade and the pruning-knife.
the movement for their relief.
With
steps slow and feeble the aged and the infirm were
By his advice they
sent deputies to represent their case to the Churches
led down into the vales, to sit once more at noon
of Protestantism abroad, and collections were made
or at eve beneath the shadow of their vines and
for them in Geneva, France, Switzerland, and Ger¬
ancestral chestnut-trees.
many.
But, alas ! how often did
The subscriptions were
headed by
the
the tear of sorrow moisten the eye as it marked
Elector Palatine, after whom came the Duke of
the desolation and ruin that deformed those scenes
Wurtemberg, the Canton of Bern, the Church at
lately so fair and smiling !
Strasburg, and others.
The fruit-bearing trees
cut down ; vineyard and corn-field marred ; ham¬
By-and-by, seed-time and harvest were restored
in some cases, a heap of
in the Yalleys; smiling chalets began again to dot
ruins, all testified to the .rage of the enemy who had
the sides of their mountains, and to rise by the
lets burned;
villages,
invaded their land. deep scars
Years must pass before these
could be effaced, and the beauty of
their Yalleys restored.
And there were yet ten¬
oanks of their torrents; and the miseries which La Trinita’s
campaign had entailed upon them
were passing into oblivion, when their vexations
How many
were renewed by the appointment of a deputy-
were there who had lived under the same roof-tree
governor of their Yalleys, Castrocaro, a Tuscan by
with them, and joined night and morning in the
birth.
derer griefs weighing
upon them.
same psalm, who would return no more ! Distress, bordering on famine, began to invade the Yalleys.
This man had served against the Yaudois as a colonel of militia under La Trinita \ he had been
Seven months of incessant fighting
taken prisoner in an encounter with them, but
had left them no time to cultivate the fields ; and
honourably treated, and at length generously re¬
now the stock of
leased.
last year’s provisions was ex¬
He returned the Waidenses evil for good.
A PLEA FOR TOLERATION.
477
His appointment as governor of the Valleys he owed
pretends to defend.
mainly to his acquaintance with the Duchess Mar¬
the seed of the Christian Church.
The ashes of the martyrs are
garet, the protectress of the Vaudois, into whose
resembles the palm-tree, whose stem only shoots up
favour he had ingratiated himself by professing a
the taller, the greater the weights that are hung
warm affection for the men of the Valleys; and his
upon it.
friendship with the Archbishop of Turin, to whom
tian religion was established by persuasion, and not
For the Church
Let your highness consider that the Chris¬
he had pledged himself to do his utmost to convert
by violence; and as it is certain that religion is
the Vaudois to Romanism.
nothing else than a firm and enlightened persuasion
When at length Cas-
trocaro arrived in the Valleys in the character of
of God, and of his will, as revealed in his Word,
governor, he forgot his professions to the duchess,
and engraven in the hearts of believers by his
but faithfully set about fulfilling the promise he had
Holy Spirit, it cannot, when once rooted, be torn
made to the archbishop.
away by tortures.”2
The new governor began by restricting the liber¬
So did the Elector Palatine
warn the duke.
ties guaranteed to their Churches in the treaty of
These are remarkable words when we think that
peace; he next ordered the dismissal of certain of
they were written in the middle of the sixteenth
the pastors, and when their congregations refused
century.
to comply, he began to fine and imprison the re¬
express itself more justly on the subject of the
We question whether our own age could
He sent false and calumnious reports to
rights of conscience, the spirituality of religion, and
the court of the duke, and introduced a troop of
the impolicy, as well as criminality, of persecu¬
soldiers into the country, on the pretext that the
tion.
Waldenses were breaking out into rebellion.
of Spain and France, on the ground of the intole¬
cusants.
He
We sometimes apologise for the cruel deeds
built the fortress of Mirabouc, at the foot of the
rance and blindness of the age.
Col de la Croix, in the narrow gorge that leads
before the St. Bartholomew Massacre was enacted,
But six years
from Bobbio to France, to close this gate of exit
this great voice had been raised in Christendom for
from their territory, and overawe the Valley of
toleration.
Lucerna.
At last, he threatened to renew the
What effect this letter had upon the duke we
war unless the Waldenses should comply with his
do not certainly know, but from about this time Castrocaro moderated his violence, though he still
wishes. What was to be done ?
They carried their com¬
continued at intervals to terrify the poor people he
plaints and remonstrances to Turin ; but, alas ! the
so basely oppressed by fulminating against them
ear of the duke and duchess had been poisoned by
the most atrocious threats.
the malice and craft of the governor.
manuel Philibert,
Soon again
the old alternative would be presented to them, the mass or death.1
in
1580,
governor came to light.
On the death of Em¬ the
villany of
the
The young Duke Charles
Emmanuel ordered his arrest; but the execution of
In their extremity they sought the help of the Protestant princes of Germany.
The cry from the
it was a matter of difficulty, for Castrocaro had entrenched himself in the Castle of La Torre, and
Alps found a responsive echo from the German
surrounded himself with a band of desperadoes, to
plains.
which he had added, for his yet greater defence, a
The great Protestant chiefs of the Father-
land, especially Frederick,
Elector Palatine, saw
pack of ferocious blood-hounds of unusual size and
in these poor oppressed herdsmen and vine-dressers
strength.3
his brethren, and with zeal and warmth espoused
and thus as he had maintained himself by treachery,
their cause.
so by treachery did his doom at last overtake him.
He indited a letter to the duke, dis¬
A captain of his guard betrayed him,
tinguished for its elevation of sentiment, as well as
He was carried to Turin, where he perished in
the catholicity of its views.
prison.4
of
the
rights
of
It is a noble defence
conscience,
pleading in behalf of toleration.
eloquent
Famine, persecution, war—all three, sometimes
“ Let your high¬
in succession and sometimes together—had afflicted
and
an
ness,” says the elector, “ know that there is a God
this much-enduring people, but now they were visited
in heaven, who not only contemplates the actions,
from the hand of God.
but also tries the hearts and reins of men, and from
enjoyed an unusual peace; and this quiet was the
whom nothing is hid.
Let your highness take care
not voluntarily to make war upon God, and not to
more
For some years they had
remarkable inasmuch as all around
mountains
Europe
was
in
combustion.
their Their
persecute Christ in his members.Per¬ secution, moreover, will never advance the cause it
1 Muston, chap. 16. Monastier, chap. 21.
2 See the letter in full in Leger* part i., pp. 41—45. 3 Muston, p. 98. 4 Monastier, p. 222. •
478
HISTOBY OF PROTESTANTISM.
brethren of the -Reformed Church in France, in
tino, and Perosa.
Spain, and in Italy were falling on the field, perishing
heights of Angrogna, to consult with the deputies
by massacre, or dying at the stake, while they were
of the various parishes regarding the means of
guarded from harm.
providing for the celebration of worship.
But now a new calamity
carried gloom and mourning into their Valleys.
The three survivors met on the
They
On
wrote to Geneva and Dauphine requesting that
the morning of the 23rd of August, 1629, a cloud of
pastors might be sent to supply the place of those
unusual blackness gathered on the summit of the
whom the plague had struck down, that so the
Col Julien.
venerable Church of the Valleys, which had sur¬
It burst in a water-spout or deluge.
The torrents rolled down the mountain on both
vived so many calamities, might not become ex¬
sides, and the villages of Bobbio and Prali, situated
tinct.
the
Constantinople.3
one in the southern and the other in the
northern valley, were overflown by the sudden inun¬ dation.
Many of the houses were swept away, and
They also recalled Antoine
Leger from
The plague subsided during the winter, but in spring (1631) it rose up again in renewed force.
Of
the inhabitants had barely time to save their lives
the three surviving pastors, one other died; leaving
by flight.
thus only two, Pierre Gilles of Lucerna, and Vale¬
In September of the same year, there
came an icy wind, accompanied by a dry cloud, which
rius Gross of Martino.
scathed their Valleys and destroyed the crop of the
summer the pestilence waxed in strength.
chestnut-tree.
going and coming in the Valleys, suffered equally
There followed a second deluge of
rain, which completely ruined the vintage.
These
calamities were the more grievous inasmuch as they succeeded a year of partial famine. pastors
assembled
in solemn
The Vaudois
synod, to humble
themselves and to lift up their voices in prayer to God.
Little did they imagine that at that
with the inhabitants.
With the heats of the Armies,
Horsemen would be seen to
drop from the saddle on the highway, seized with sudden illness. by-paths, lay
Soldiers and sutlers, struck in there infecting the air with
their
corpses.
In La Torre alone fifty families became
extinct.
The most moderate estimate of the num¬
moment a still heavier calamity hung over them,
bers cut off by the plague is
and that this was the last time they were ever to
half to two-thirds of the entire population of the
meet one another on earth.1
Valleys.
In 1630, a French army, under Marshal Schomberg,
suddenly
occupied
the
Valleys.
In that
10,000, or from a
The corn in many places remained uncut,
the grapes rotted on the bough, dropped from the tree.
and
the fruit
Strangers who had come to
army were many volunteers, who had made their
find health in the pure mountain air, obtained from
escape from a virulent contagious disease then raging
the soil nothing but a grave.
in France.
which had rung so recently with the sounds of
The weather was hot, and the seeds of
the pestilence which the army had brought with it
industry, were now silent.
speedily developed themselves.
children,
The plague showed
and
children
Towns and villages, Parents were without
were
without
parents.
itself in the first week of May in the Valley of
Patriarchs, who had been wont with pride and
Perosa; it next broke out in the more northern
joy to gather round them their numerous grand¬
Valley of Martino ; and soon it spread throughout
children, had seen them sicken and die, and were
all the Valleys.
now alone.
plicate
The pastors met together to sup¬
the Almighty,
and to concert practical
measures for checking the ravages of this myste¬ rious and terrible scourge.
They purchased medi¬
cine and collected provisions for the poor.2
They
visited the sick, consoled the dying, and preached
The venerable pastor Gilles lost his
four elder sons.
Though continually present in
the homes of the stricken, and at the bed-sides of the dying, he himself was spared to compile the monuments of his ancient Church, among
other woes that which
and narrate
had just passed
in the open air to crowds, solemnised and eager to
over his native land, and “ part of which he had
listen.
been.”
In July and August the heat was excessive, and the malady raged yet more furiously.
Of the Vaudois pastors only two now remained;
In the
and ministers hastened from Geneva and other
month of July four of the pastors were carried
places to the Valleys, lest the old lamp should go
off by the plague;
in August seven others died;
and in the following month another, the twelfth, was mortally stricken. three
pastors,
and
The services of the Waldensian Churches had
There remained now only
it was remarked that they
belonged to three several valleys—Lucerna, Mar-
1 Muston, p. 111.
out.
hitherto been performed in the Italian tongue, but
2 Monastier, p. 241.
3 Muston, pp. 112, 113. Antoine Leger was uncle of Leger the historian. He had been tutor for many years in the family of the Ambassador of Holland at Constanti¬ nople.
470
THE PLAGUE OF MONKS. the new pastors could speak only French. was
henceforward
but
the Yaudois
conducted soon
in that
came to
Worship language,
understand it,
duced at this time was the assimilation of their ritual to that of Geneva.
their own ancient tongue being a dialect between
and
the French and Italian.
Ministre,l
Another change intro¬
CHAPTER THE
GREAT
And farther, the primi¬
tive and affectionate name of Barba was dropped, the
modem
title substituted,
Monsieur k
XL
MASSACRE.
Preliminary Atacks—The Propaganda de Fide—Marchioness di Pianeza—Gastaldo’s Order—Its Barbarous Execution —Greater Sorrows—Perfidy of Pianeza—The Massacring Army—Its Attack and Repulse—Treachery—The Mas¬ sacre Begins—Its Horrors—Modes of Torture—Individual Martyrs—Leger Collects Evidence on the Spot— He Appeals to the Protestant States —Interposition of Cromwell—Mission of Sir Samuel Morland—A Martyr’s Monument. The first labour of the Waldenses, on the departure
Francis II., Duke of
of the plague, was the re-organisation of society.
temper and gloomy superstition of her ancestors,
There was not a house in all their Yalleys where
the
death had not been.
up
All ties rent, the family re¬
lationship was all but extinct; but the destroyer being gone, the scattered inhabitants began to draw
Medici—a with
the
name
so
The
ferocious
conspicuously
world-execrated
Bartholomew—had Christina.
Tuscany.
descended
mixed
massacre to
the
of
St.
Duchess
In no other reign did the tears and
'together, and to join hand and heart in restoring
blood of the Waldenses flow so profusely, a fact for
the ruined eliurches, raising up the fallen habita¬
which we cannot satisfactorily account, unless on
tions, and creating anew family and home.
the supposition that the sufferings which now over
Other
events
of
an
auspicious
kind, which
whelmed them came not from the mild prince who
occurred at this time, contributed to revive the
occupied the throne, but from the cold, cruel, and
spirits of the Waldenses, and to brighten with a
bloodthirsty regent who governed the kingdom.
gleam of hope the scene of the recent great cata¬
In short, there is reason to believe that it was not
strophe.
the facile spirit of the House of Savoy, but the
The army took its departure, peace having
been signed between the French monarch and the
astute
duke, and the Yalleys returned once more under
Yatican, that enacted those scenes of carnage that
the dominion of the House of Savoy.
we are now to record.
A decade
spirit
of
the’ Medici,
prompted by
the
and a half of comparative tranquillity allowed the
The blow did not descend all at once; a series of
population to root itself anew, and their Yalleys
lesser attacks heralded the great and consummating
and mountain-sides to be brought
stroke.
tillage.
again
under
Fifteen years—how short a breathing-
meant to be complete and final.
space amid storms so awful! These fifteen years draw to a close; it is now 1650, and the Yaudois are entering within the shadow of their greatest woe.
Machinations, chicaneries, and legal rob¬
beries paved the way for an extermination that was
The throne of Savoy
First of all came the monks.
We have seen the
plague with which the Yalleys were visited in 1630; there came a second plague—not this time
was at this time filled by Charles Emmanuel II., a
the pestilence, but a swarm of Capuchins.
youth of fifteen.
had been sent to convert the heretics, and they
He was a prince of mild and
humane disposition;
but he was counselled and
They
began by eagerly challenging the pastors to a con¬
ruled by his mother, the Duchess Christina, who
troversy, in which they felt sure of triumphing.
had been appointed regent of the kingdom during
few attempts, however, convinced them that victory
his minority.
was not to be so easily won as they had fondly
That mother was sprung of a race
The heretics made “ a
A
which have ever been noted for their dissimulation,
thought.
their cruelty, and their bigoted devotion to Rome.
Bible,” they complained, and as this was a boox
Pope of their
She was the daughter of Henry IY. of France and his second wife, Mary de Medici, daughter of
1 Monastier, chap. 18.
Muston, pp. 242, 243.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
480
which the Fathers had not studied, they did not
order forbidding them to cross the frontier even for
know where to find the passages which they felt
a few hours, unless on fair-days.
sure would confute the
They
testant communes of Bobbio, Villaro, Angrogna,
could silence them only by banishing them, and
and Rora were ordered to maintain each a mission
among others whom they drove into exile was
of Capuchins; and foreign Protestants were inter¬
file
of
dieted from settling in the Yalleys under pain of
Thus were the people deprived
death, and a fine of 1,000 gold crowns upon the
Yaudois pastors.
accomplished Antoine
the historian. of their
natural
leaders.1
Leger,
the
uncle
The Yaudois
were
forbidden on pain of confiscation and death to
The wholly Pro¬
communes that should receive them.
purchase or farm lands outside their own narrow
were mostly French or Swiss.
territories.
in a few years the Yaudois would
Certain of their churches were closed.
Their territory was converted into a prison by an
This law was
levelled against their pastors, who, since the plague,
ministers.
It was hoped that be without
Monls-de-Piete were established to in¬
duce the Yaudois, whom confiscations, bad harvests, 4 Muston, p. 126.
and the billeting of soldiers had reduced to great
THE PROPAGANDISTS.
481
straits, to pawn their goods, and when all had been
pressed forward to enrol themselves in it—the
put in pledge they were offered restitution in full
inducement being a plenary indulgence to all who
on condition of renouncing their faith.
Dowries
were promised to young maidens on the terms.1
same
These various arts had a success
prisingly small.
sur-
Some dozen of Waldensian per-
verts were added to the Roman Church.
It was
should take part in the good work so unmistakably indicated in the one brief and pithy clause, “ et Extirpandis Hsereticis.” The societies in the smaller towns
reported to the metropolitan cities;
the
metropolitan cities to the capital; and the capitals
plain that the good work of proselytising was
to Rome, where, in the words of Leger, “ sat the
proceeding too slowly.
great spider that held the threads of this mighty
More efficient measures
must be had recourse to.
web.”
The Society for the “ Propagation of the Faith,” established by Pope
Gregory XY. in 1622, had
In 1650 the “ Council of the Propagation of the Faith ” was established at Turin.
CROMWELL AND MILTON.
already been spread over Italy and France. object
of
the
society was
originally set
The forth
The chief coun-
(See p, 486.)
cillors of state, the great lords of the country, and the dignitaries of the Church enrolled themselves
in words sufficiently simple and innocent—“ De
as a presiding board.
Propaganda Fidei” (for the Propagation of the
formed, at the head of which was the Marchioness
Faith).
di Pianeza.
Since the first institution of this society,
however, its object had undergone enlargement, or, if not its object, at all events its title.
Societies of women were
She was the first lady at court; and
as she had not worn “ the white rose of a blameless
Its first
life,” she was all the more zealous in this cause,
modest designation was supplemented by the em¬
in the hope of making expiation for the errors of
phatic words,
“ et
Extirpandis
the Extirpation of Heretics).
Hsereticis ” (and
The membership of
the society soon became numerous:
it included
the past.
She was at infinite pains to further
the object of the society; and her own eager spirit she infused into all under her.
“ The lady propa¬
both laymen and priests; all ranks, from the noble
gandists,” says Leger,2 “distributed the towns into
and the prelate to the peasant and the pauper,
districts, and each visited the district assigned to
1 Muston, p. 129.
2
Leger, part ii., chap. 6, pp. 72, 73.
HISTOBY OF PBOTESTANTISM.
482
iier twice a week, suborning simple girls, servant
of converting the Yaudois.
maids, and young children by their flattering al¬
storm burst.
lurements and fair promises, and doing evil turns to such as would not listen to them.
They had
their spies everywhere, who, among other infor¬ mation,
ascertained in what Protestant families
It was now that the
On the 25th of January, 1655, came the famous order of Gastaldo.
This decree commanded all the
Yaudois families domiciled in the communes of Lucerna, Fenile, Bubiana,
Bricherasio, San Gio¬
disagreements existed, and hither would the pro¬
vanni, and La Torre—in short, the whole of that
pagandists repair, stirring up the flame of dissension
rich district that separates their capital from the
in order to separate the husband from the wife,
plain of Piedmont—to quit their dwellings within
the wife from the husband, the children from the
three days, and retire into the Yalleys of Bobbio,
parents; promising them, and indeed giving them,
Angrogna, and Bora.
great advantages, if they would consent to attend
pain of death.
mass.
their lands
Did they hear of a tradesman whose busi¬
to
This they were to do on
They were farther required to sell Eomanists within
twenty days.
ness was falling off, or of a gentleman who from
Those who were willing to abjure the Protestant
gambling or otherwise was in want of money, these
faith were exempted from the decree.
ladies were at hand with their Bobo tibi (I will give thee), on condition of apostacy;
and the prisoner
Anything more inhuman and barbarous in the circumstances than this edict it would not be easy
was in like manner relieved from his dungeon, who
to imagine.
would give himself up to them.
Alpine winter has terrors unknown to the winters
To meet the very
It was the depth of winter, and an
heavy expenses of this proselytising, to keep the
of even more northern regions.
machinery at work, to purchase the souls that sold
population like that on which the decree fell, in¬
However could a
themselves for bread, regular collections were made
cluding young children and old men, the sick and
in the chapels, and in private families, in the shops,
bed-ridden, the blind and the lame, undertake a
in the inns, in the gambling-houses, in the streets—■
journey
everywhere was alms-begging in operation.
buried in snow, and over mountains covered with
The
across
swollen
rivers,
through
valleys
Marchioness of Pianeza herself, great lady as she
ice ?
was, used every second or third day to make a
that cast them out was but another form of con¬
They must inevitably perish, and the edict
circuit in search of subscriptions, even going into
demning them to die of cold and hunger.
the taverns for that purpose.If any
ye,” said Christ, when warning his disciples to flee
“ Pray
person of condition, who was believed able to con¬
when they should see the Boman armies gathering
tribute a coin, chanced to arrive at any hotel in
round Jerusalem, (t Pray ye that your flight be not
town, these ladies did not fail to wait upon him,
in the winter.”
purse in hand, and solicit a
chose this season for the enforced flight of the
donation.
When
The Bomish Propaganda at Turin
persons of substance known to belong to the reli¬
Yaudois.
gion [Eeformed] arrived in Turin, they did not
down on this miserable troop, who were now fording
Cold were the icy peaks that looked
scruple to ask money of them for the propagation
the torrents and now struggling up the mountain
of the faith, and the influence of the marchioness,
tracks, but the heart of the persecutor was colder
or fear of losing their errand and ruining their
still.
affairs, would often induce such to comply.”
might go to mass.
While busied in the prosecution of these schemes the
Marchioness di Pianeza was
death.
Feeling remorse,
stricken with
and wishing to make
it ?
True, an alternative was offered them : they Did they avail themselves of
The historian Leger informs us that he had
a congregation of well-nigh
2,000 persons, and
that not a man of them all accepted the alterna¬
atonement, she summoned her lord, from whom she
tive.
had been parted many years, to her bedside, and
observes, “ seeing I was their pastor for eleven
“I can well bear them this testimony,” he
charged him, as he valued the repose of her soul
years, and I knew every one of them by name;
and the safety of his own, to continue the good
judge, reader, whether I had not cause to weep for
work, on which her heart had been so much set,
joy, as well as for sorrow, when I saw that all the
of converting the Yaudois.
To stimulate his zeal,
fury of these wolves was not able to influence one
she bequeathed him a sum of money, which, how¬
of these lambs, and that no earthly advantage could
ever, he could not touch till he had fulfilled the
shake their constancy.
condition on which it was granted.
traces of their blood on the snow and ice over
The marquis
And when I marked the
A
which they had dragged their lacerated limbs, had I
bigot and a soldier, he could think of only one way
not cause to bless God that I had seen accomplished
undertook the task with the utmost goodwill.1
in their poor bodies what remained of the measure
2 Muston, p. 130.
of the sufferings of Christy and especially when I
483
VAUDOIS VALOUR beheld this heavy cross borne by them with a forti¬
well, some companies of Bavarians, six regiments of
tude so noble 1 ” 1
French, whose thirst for blood the Huguenot wars
The Vaudois of the other valleys welcomed these
had not been able to slake, and several companies
poor exiles, and- joyfully shared with them their
of Irish Romanists, who, banished by Cromwell,
own humble and scanty fare.
arrived in Piedmont dripping from the massacre of
They spread the
table for all, and loaded it with polenta and roasted
their
chestnuts, with the milk and butter of their moun¬
land.5
tains, to which they did not forget to add a cup of that red wine which their valleys produce.2
Their
enemies were amazed when they saw the whole
in
their native
The Waldenses had hastily constructed a bar¬ ricade at the entrance of La Torre.
The marquis
ordered his soldiers to storm it; but the besieged resisted so stoutly that, after three hours’ fighting,
community rise up as one man and depart. Greater woes trod fast upon the heels of this initial calamity.
Protestant fellow-subjects
A part only of the Vaudois
the enemy found he had made no advance.
At one
o’clock on the Sunday morning, Count Amadeus of
nation had suffered from the cruel decree of Gas-
Lucerna, who knew the locality, made a flank
taldo, but the fixed object of the Propaganda was
movement along the banks * of the Pelice, stole
the extirpation of the entire race, and the matter
silently through the meadows and orchards, and,
was gone about with consummate perfidy and deli¬
advancing from the opposite quarter, attacked the
berate cruelty.
From the upper valleys, to which
Vaudois in the rear.
They faced round, pierced
they had retired, the Waldenses sent respectful
the ranks of their assailants, and made good their
representations to the court of Turin.
retreat to the hills, leaving La Torre in the hands
They de¬
scribed their piteous condition in terms so moving
of the enemy.
—and it would have been hard to have exaggerated
men in all that fighting.
it—and besought the fulfilment of treaties in which
and three o’clock on Sunday morning, and though
the honour and truth of the House of Savoy were
the hour was early, the Romanists repaired in a
pledged, in language so temperate and just, that
body to the church and chanted a Te Deum.6
one would have thought that
day was Palm-Sunday, and in this fashion did the
must needs prevail.
Alas, no !
their supplication The ear of their
prince had been poisoned by falsehood. access to him was denied them.
Even
As regarded
The Vaudois had lost only three It was now between two
The
Roman Church, by her soldiers, celebrate that great festival of love and goodwill in the Waldensian Valleys.
the Propaganda, their remonstrances, though ac¬
The Vaudois were once more on their mountains.
companied with tears and groans, were wholly
Their families had been previously transported to
unheeded.
their natural fastnesses.
adders.
The Vaudois were but charming deaf
They were put off with equivocal answers
Their sentinels kept watch
night and day along the frontier heights.
They
and delusive promises till the fatal 17th of April
could see the movements of Pianeza’s army on the
had arrived, when it was no longer necessary to
plains beneath.
dissemble and equivocate.3
by the axes, and their dwellings being consumed
On the day above named, April 17th, 1655, the
They beheld their orchards falling
by the torches of the soldiers.
On Monday the
Marquis di Pianeza departed secretly at midnight
19th, and Tuesday the 20th, a series of skirmishes
from Turin, and appeared before the Valleys at the
took place along the line of their mountain passes
head of an army of 15,000 men.4
The Waldensian
and forts.
The Vaudois, though poorly armed and
deputies were by appointment knocking at the door
vastly outnumbered—for they were but as one to
of the marquis in Turin, while he himself was on
a hundred—were victorious on all points.
the road to
He appeared under the
Popish soldiers fell back in ignominious rout, carry¬
La Torre.
The
eight o’clock on Satur¬
ing wondrous tales of the Vaudois’ valour and
day evening, the same 17th of April, attended by
heroism to their comrades on the plain, and infusing
about 300 men; the main body of his army he had
incipient panic into the camp.7
walls of that town
at
left encamped on the plain.
That army, secretly
Guilt is ever cowardly.
Pianeza now began to
prepared, was composed of Piedmontese, compre¬
have misgivings touching the issue.
hending a good many banditti, who were promised
tion that mighty armies had aforetime perished on
pardon and plunder should they behave themselves
The recollec¬
these mountains haunted and disquieted him.
He
betook him to a weapon which the Waldenses have 1 2 3 4
Leger, part ii., chap. 8, p. 94. Monastier, p. 265. Leger, part ii., pp. 95, 96. Ibid., part iv., p. 108.
5 Monastier, p. 267. 6 Muston, p. 135. 7 Leger, part ii., pp. 108,109.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
484
ever been less able to cope with than the sword.
the Yalleys of Lucerna and Angrogna.
On Wednesday, the 21st, before daybreak, he an¬
Pandemonium had sent forth its fiends to riot
nounced, by
in crime and revel in blood, they could not have
sound
of
trumpet at the various
Though
Yaudois entrenchments, his willingness to receive
outdone the soldiers of the Propaganda.
their deputies and treat for peace.
the victims climbing the hills with what speed they
Delegates set
out for his camp, and on their arrival at
head¬
are able, the murderer on their track.
We see
We see the
quarters were received with the utmost urbanity,
torrents as they roll down from the heights begin¬
and sumptuously entertained.
ning to be tinged with blood.
Pianeza expressed
Gleams of lurid
the utmost regret for the excesses his soldiers had
light burst out through the dark smoke that is roll¬
committed,
ing through
and which had been done, he said,
contrary to orders.
He protested that he had come
the vales, for
a priest and monk
accompany each party of soldiers, to set fire to the
into their valleys only to track a few fugitives who
houses as soon as the inmates have been dispatched.
had disobeyed Gastaldo’s order, that the higher
Alas ! what sounds are these that fall upon our ears ?
communes had nothing to fear, and that if they
The cries and groans of the dying are echoed and
would admit a single regiment each for a few days,
re-echoed from the rocks around, and it seems as if
in token of their loyalty, all would be amicably
the mountains had taken up a wailing for the
ended.
slaughter of their children.
The craft of the man conquered the depu¬
ties, and despite the warnings of the more sagacious, the
pastor Leger
in
particular,
the Waldenses
opened the passes of their valleys and the doors of
“ Our Yalley of Lu-
cerha,” exclaims Leger, “ which was like a Goshen, was now
converted into a Mount Etna, darting
forth cinders and fire and flames. The earth resem¬ bled a furnace, and the air was filled with a dark¬
their dwellings to the soldiers of Pianeza. these poor people were undone.
ness like that of Egypt, which might be felt, from
They had received under their roof the murderers
the smoke of towns, villages, temples, mansions,
of themselves and their families.
granges, and buildings, all burning in the flames of
Alas !
alas!
The first two
comparative peace, the soldiers eating at the same
the Yatican.”4 The soldiers were not content
table, sleeping under the same roof, and conversing
dispatch
freely with their destined victims.
This interval
hitherto unheard-of modes of torture and death. No
was needed to allow every preparation to be made
man at this day dare write in plain words all the
days, the 22nd and 23rd of April, were passed in
with the quick
of the sword, they invented new and
The enemy now occupied
disgusting and horrible deeds of these men; their
the towns, the villages, the cottages, and the roads
wickedness can never be all known, because it
throughout the valleys. They hung upon the heights.
never can be all told.
for what was to follow.
Two great passes led into France : the one over the
, From the awful narration of Leger, we select only
snows of the lofty Col Julien, and the other by the
a few instances;
Yalley of Queyras into Dauphin^.
mildly stated, grow, without our intending it, into
But,
escape was not possible by either outlet.
alas!
No one
but
a group of horrors.
even these
few, however
Little children were torn from
could traverse the Col Julien at this season and
the arms of their mothers, clasped by their tiny
live,
feet, and their heads dashed against the rocks; or
and the fortress of Mirabouc,
that guarded
the narrow gorge which led into the Yalley of
were held between two soldiers and their quivering
Queyras, the enemy had been careful to secure.1 The
limbs torn
Yaudois were enclosed as in a net—shut in as in a
bodies were then thrown on the highways or fields,
prison.
to be devoured by beasts.
At last the blow fell with the sudden crash of the thunderbolt.
At four o’clock on the morn¬
up by main force.
Their
mangled
The sick and the aged
were burned alive in their dwellings.
Some had
their hands and arms and legs lopped off, and fire
ing of Saturday, the 24th of April, 1655, the signal
applied to the severed parts to staunch the bleeding
was given from the castle-hill of La Torre.2
But
and prolong their
who shall rehearse the tragedy that followed h
“It
alive, some were roasted alive, some disembowelled ;
suffering.
Some
were
flayed
is Cain a second time,” says Monastier, “ shedding
or tied to trees in their own orchards, and their
the blood of his brother Abel.”3
hearts cut out.
On the instant a
thousand assassins began the work of death.
Dis¬
may, horror, agony, woe in a moment overspread
Some were horribly mutilated, and
of others the brains were boiled and eaten by these cannibals.
Some were fastened down into the fur¬
rows of their own fields, and ploughed into the soil 1 Leger, part ii., p. 110. >2 So says Leger, who was an eye-witness of these horrors. 3 Monastier, p, 270.
as
men plough
manure into
it.
4 Leger, part ii., p. 113.
Others
were
THE PIEDMONTESE MASSACRES.
485
buried alive.' Fathers were marched to death with
and murders before or since, and Leger may still
the heads of their sons suspended round their necks.
advance his challenge to “ all travellers, and all
Parents were compelled to look on while their
who have studied the history of ancient and modern
children were first outraged, then massacred, before
pagans, whether among the Chinese, Tartars and
being themselves permitted to die. must stop.
But here we
We cannot proceed farther in Leger’s
Turks, they ever witnessed or heard tell of such execrable perfidies and barbarities.”
vile, abominable
The authors of these deeds, thinking it may be
and monstrous deeds, utterly and overwhelmingly
that their very atrocity would make the world slow
disgusting, horrible and fiendish, which we dare not
to believe them, made bold to deny that they had
transcribe.
ever been done, even before the blood was well dry
awful narration.
to swim.
There come
The heart sickens, and the brain begins
“ My hand trembles,” says Leger, “ so that
I scarce can hold the pen, and my tears mingle in
in the Valleys.
Pastor Leger took instant and
effectual means to demonstrate the falsehood of that
torrents with my ink, while I write the deeds of
denial, and to provide that clear, irrefragable, and
these children of darkness—blacker even than the
indubitable proof of these awful crimes should go
Prince of Darkness himself.”1
down to posterity.
He travelled from commune to
No general account, however awful, can convey
commune, immediately after the massacre, attended
so correct an idea of the horrors of this persecution
by notaries, who took down the depositions and
as would the history of individual cases ; but this
attestations of the survivors and eye-witnesses of
we are precluded from giving.
these deeds, in presence of the council and consistory
Could we take these
martyrs one by one—could we describe the tragical
of the place.2
fate of Peter Simeon of Angrogna—the barbarous
he compiled and gave to the world a book, which
From the evidence of these witnesses
death of Magdalene, wife of Peter Pilon of Villaro
Dr. Gilly truly characterised as one of the most
—the sad story—but no, that story could not be
“dreadful” in existence.3
told—of Anne, daughter of John Charbonier of La
depositions Leger gave to
The originals of these
Torre—the cruel martyrdom of Paul Gamier of
who deposited them, together with other valuable
Rora, whose eyes were first plucked out, who next
documents pertaining to the Waldenses, in the
endured other horrible indignities, and, last of all,
Library of the University of Cambridge.
Sir Samuel Morland,
was flayed alive, and his skin, divided into four
Uncontrollable grief seized the hearts of the sur¬
parts, extended on the window gratings of the four
vivors at the sight of their brethren slain, their
principal houses in Lucerna—could we describe
country devastated, and their Church overthrown.
these
“ Oh that my head were waters,” exclaims Leger,
cases,
with
hundreds
of
others
equally
horrible and appalling, our narrative would grow
“ and mine eyes a fountain of tears, that I might
so harrowing that our readers, unable to proceed,
weep day and 'night for the slain of the daughter of
would turn from the page.
my people !
Literally did the Wal-
Behold and see if there be any sorrow
denses suffer all the things of which the apostle
like unto my sorrow.”
speaks, as endured by the martyrs of old, with other
“that the fugitives, who had been snatched as brands
“It was then,” he adds,
torments not then invented, or which the rage of
from the burning, could address God in the words
even a Nero shrank from inflicting :—“They were
of the 7 9th Psalm, which literally as emphatically
stoned, they were sawn asunder, were tempted,
describes their condition :—
were slain with the sword ; in
sheep-skins
they wandered about
and goat-skins;
being destitute,
afflicted, tormented (of whom the world was not worthy);
they wandered in deserts, and in moun¬
tains, and in dens, and caves of the earth.” These cruelties form a scene that is unparalleled and unique in the history of at least civilised coun¬ tries.
“ ‘0 God, the heathen are come into thine inheritances, Thy holy temple have they defiled; They have laid Jerusalem on heaps. The dead bodies of thy servants have they given To be meat unto the fowls of heaven, The flesh of thy saints unto the beasts of the earth, Their blood have they shed like water; . . . . And there was none to bury them! ’ ”4
There have been tragedies in which more
When the storm had abated, Leger assembled the
blood was spilt, and more life sacrificed, but none in which the actors were so completely dehumanised, and the forms of suffering so monstrously disgust¬ ing,
so
unutterably cruel and revolting.
The
“ Piedmontese Massacres ” in this respect stand alone.
They are more fiendish than all the atrocities 1
Leger, part ii., p. 111.
Leger, part ii., p. 112. The book is that from which we have so largely quoted, entitled Histoire Generale des Eglises Evangeliques des Vallees de Piemont ou Vaudoises. Par Jean Leger, Pasteur et Moderateur des Eglises des Vallees, et depuis la violence de la Persecution, appele a l’Eglise Wallonne de Leyde. A. Leyde, 1669. 4 Leger, part ii., p. 113. 2 3
486
HISTOEY OF PEOTESTANTISM.
scattered survivors, in order to take counsel with
visited the Valleys on his way to Turin, and saw
them as to the steps to he now taken.
with his own eyes the frightful spectacle which
It does not
surprise us to find that some had begun to enter¬
the region still presented.
tain the idea of abandoning the Yalleys altogether.
the duke, the horrors he had just seen giving point
“If,” said he, addressing
Leger strongly dissuaded them against the thought
to his eloquence, and kindling his republican plain¬
of forsaking their ancient inheritance.
They must,
ness into Puritan fervour, “If the tyrants of all times
he said, rebuild their Zion in the faith that the God
and ages were alive again, they would doubtless be
of their fathers would not permit the Church of the
ashamed to find that nothing barbarous nor inhuman,
Valleys-to be finally overthrown.
in comparison
To encourage
of these deeds, had ever been in¬
them, he undertook to lay a representation of their
vented by them.
sufferings and broken condition before their brethren
“ the angels are stricken with horror; men are dizzy
In the meantime,” he continued,
of other countries, who, he was sure, would hasten
with amazement; heaven itself appears astonished
to their help at this great crisis.
with the cries of the dying, and the very earth to
prevailed.
These counsels
“ Our tears are no longer of water,” so
blush with the gore of so many innocent persons.
wrote the remnant of the slaughtered Vaudois to
Avenge not thyself, O God, for this mighty wicked¬
the Protestants
ness, this parricidal slaughter !
of
Europe, “ they are of blood ;
they do not merely obscure our sight, they choke our very hearts.
Our hands tremble and our heads
ache by the many blows we have received.
We
Let thy blood, O
Christ, wash out this blood 3”2 We have repeatedly mentioned the Castelluzze in our narrative of this people and their many
cannot frame an epistle answerable to the intent of
martyrdoms.
our minds, and the strangeness of our desolations.
Massacre of 1655, and as such kindled the muse of
It is closely
connected
with
the
We pray you to excuse us, and to collect amid our
Milton.
groans the meaning of what we fain would utter.”
its feet swathed in feathery woods; above which is
It stands at the entrance of the Valleys,
After this touching introduction, they proceed with
a mass of debris and fallen rocks, which countless
a representation of their state, expressing them¬
tempests have
selves in terms the moderation of which contrasts
middle.
strongly with the extent of their wrongs.
Pro¬
gathered like a girdle
round its
From amidst these the supreme column
shoots up, pillar-like, and touches that white cloud
testant Europe was horror-struck when the tale
which is floating past in mid-heaven.
of the massacre was laid before it.
a dark spot on the face of the cliff just below the
Nowhere
did these
awful
tidings
awaken
a
crowning rocks of the summit.
One can see
It would be taken
deeper sympathy or kindle a stronger indignation
for the shadow of a passing cloud upon the moun¬
than in England.
tain, were it not that it is immovable.
Cromwell, who was then at the
head of the State, proclaimed a fast, ordered a col¬
That is
the mouth of a cave so roomy, it is said, as to be
lection for the sufferers,1 and wrote to all the Pro¬
able to contain some hundreds.
testant princes, and to the King of France, with
chamber the Waldenses were wont to flee when the
the intent of enlisting their sympathy and aid in
valley beneath was a perfect Pandemonium, glitter¬
behalf of the Vaudois.
One of the noblest as well
To this friendly
ing with steel, red with crime, and ringing with
as most sacred of the tasks ever undertaken by the
execrations and blasphemies.
great poet, who then acted as the Protector’s Latin
of the Vaudois fled on occasion of the great mas¬
secretary, was the writing of these letters.
Mil¬
sacre.
To this cave many
But, alas ! thither the persecutor tracked
ton’s pen was not less gloriously occupied when
them, and dragging them forth rolled them down
writing
the awful precipice.
in
behalf
of
these venerable
sufferers
for conscience sake, than when writing “ Paradise Lost.”
In token of the deep interest he took in
The law that indissolubly links great crimes with the spot where they were perpetrated, has written
this affair, Cromwell sent Sir Samuel Morland with
the Massacre of 1655 on this mountain, and given
a letter to the Duke of Savoy, expressive of the
it in eternal keeping to its rock.
astonishment and sorrow he felt at the barbarities
another
There is not
such martyrs’ monument in the whole
which had been committed on those who were his brethren in the
faith.
Cromwell’s
ambassador
1 The sum collected in England was,, in round numbers, .£38,000. Of this, .£16,000 was invested on the security of me State, to pension pastors, schoolmasters, and students in the Valleys. This latter sum was appropriated by Charles II., on the pretext that he was not bound to implement the engagements of a usurper.
2 The History of the Evangelical Churches of the Valleys of Piedmont: containing a most exact Geographical De¬ scription of the place, and a faithful Account of the Doctrine, Life, and Persecutions of the ancient Inhabit-' ants, together with a most naked and punctual Relation of the late bloody Massacre, 1655. By Samuel Morland* Esq., His Highness’ Commissioner Extraordinary for the Affairs of the said Valleys. London, 1658.
A VAT.'1)018 FAMILY ENTERTAINING SOME OF PIANEZA’s SOLDIERS.
(Seep. 484.)
488
HISTOEY OF PROTESTANTISM.
world. While the Castelluzzo stands the memory of this great crime cannot die; through all the ages it will continue to cry, and that cry our sublimest poet has interpreted in his sublime sonnet :—
Forget not: in thy book record their groans Who were thy sheep, and in their ancient fold Slain by the bloody Piedmontese, that roll’d Mother with infant down the rocks. Their moans The vales redoubled to the hills, and they To heaven. Their martyr’d blood and ashes sow O’er all the Italian fields, where still doth sway The triple tyrant; that from these may grow A hundredfold, who, having learned thy way, Early may fly the Babylonian woe.”
“ Avenge, 0 Lord, thy slaughter’d saints, whose bones Lie scattered on the Alpine mountains cold; Even them who kept thy truth so pure of old. When all our fathers worshipt stocks and stones,
CHAPTER
XII.
EXPLOITS OF GIANAYELLO—MASSACRE AND PILLAGE OF RORA.
Ascent of La Combe—Beauty and Grandeur of Valley of Eora—Gianavello—His Character—Marquis di Pianeza— His First Assault—Brave Eepulse—Treachery of the Marquis—No Faith with Heretics—Gianavello’s Band— Eepulse of Second and Third Attacks—Death of a Persecutor—An Army Eaised to Invade Eora—Massacre and Pillage—Letter of Pianeza—Gianavello’s Heroic Eeply—Gianavello Eenews the War—500 against 15,000—Success of the Waldenses—Horror at the Massacre—Interposition of England—Letter of Cromwell—Treaty of Peace. The next tragic episode in the history of the Waldenses takes us to the Yalley of Eora. The in¬ vasion and outrages of which this valley became the scene were contemporaneous with the horrors of the Great Massacre. In what we are now to relate, feats of heroism are blended with deeds of suffering, and we are called to admire The valour of the patriot, as well as the patience of the martyr. The Yalley of Eora lies on the left as one enters La Torre; it is separated from Lucerna by a barrier of mountains. Eora has two entrances: one by a side ravine, which branches off about two miles before reaching La Torre, and the other by crossing the Yalley of Lucerna and climbing the mountains. This last is worthy of being briefly described. We start, we shall suppose, from the town of La Torre; we skirt the Castelluzzo on the right, which high in air hangs its precipices, with their many tragic memories, above us. From this point we turn to the left, descend into the valley, traverse its bright meadows, here shaded by the vine which stretches its arms in classic freedom from tree to tree. We cross the torrent of the Pelice by a small bridge, and hold on our way till we reach the foot of the mountains of La Combe, that wall in the Yalley of Eora. We begin to climb by a winding path. Pasturage and vineyard give place to chestnut forest; the chestnut in its turn yields to the pine; and, as we mount still higher, we find ourselves amid the naked ledges of the mountain, with their gushing rills, margined by moss or other Alpine herbage.
An ascent of two hours brings us to the summit of the pass. We have here a pedestal, some 4,000 feet in height, in the midst of a stupendous amphi¬ theatre of Alps, from which to view their glories. How profoundly deep the valley from which we have just climbed up ! A thread of silver is now the Pelice; a patch of green a few inches square is now the meadow; the chestnut-tree is a mere dot, hardly visible; and yonder are La Torre and the white Yillaro, so tiny that they look as if they could be packed into a child's toy-box. But while all else has diminished, the mountains seem to have enlarged their bulk and increased their stature. High above us towers the summit of the Castelluzzo; still higher rise the rolling masses of the Yandalin, the lower slopes of which form a vast and magnificent hanging garden, utterly dwarfing those of which we read as one of the wonders of Babylon. And in the far distance the eye rests on a tumultuous sea of mountains, here rising in needles, there running off in long serrated ridges, and there standing up in massy peaks of naked granite, wearing the shining gar¬ ments which winter weaves for the giants of the Alps. We now descend into the Yalley of Eora. It lies at our feet, a cup of verdure, some sixty miles in circumference, its sides and bottom variously clothed with corn-field and meadow, with vineyard and orchard, with the walnut, the cherry, and all fruit-bearing trees, from amid which numerous brown chalets peep out. The great mountains
CAPTAIN JOSHUA GIANAYELLQ.
489
sweep round the valley like a wall, and among
tiplied tenfold the number of their assailants. They
them, pre-eminent in glory as in stature, stands the
began to retreat. But Gianavello and his men, bound¬
monarch of the Cottian Alps—Monte Yiso.
ing from cover to cover like so many chamois,
As among the Jews of old, so among the Wal-
hung upon their rear, and did deadly execution
denses, God raised up, from time to time, mighty
with their bullets.
men of valour to deliver his people.
One of the
their number dead behind them ; and thus did these
most remarkable of these men was Gianavello, com¬
seven peasants chase from their Yalley of Pora the
The invaders left fifty-four of
monly known as Captain Joshua Gianavello, a native
500 assassins who had come to murder its peaceful
of this same Yalley of Pora.
inhabitants.1
He appears, from
the accounts that have come down to us, to have
That same afternoon the people of Pora, who
possessed all the qualities of a great military leader.
were ignorant of the fearful murders which were at
He was a man of daring courage, of resolute pur¬
that very moment proceeding in the valleys of* their
pose, and of venturous enterprise.
brethren, repaired to the Marquis di Pianeza to
He had the
faculty, so essential in a commander, of skilful com¬
complain of the attack.
bination.
ignorance of the whole affair.
He was fertile in resource, and self-
The marquis affected “ Those who invaded
possessed in emergencies; he was quick to resolve,
your valley,” said he, “were a set of banditti.
and prompt to execute.
did right to repel them.
His devotion and energy
You
Go back to your families
were the means, under God, of mitigating some¬
and fear nothing; I pledge my word and honour
what the horrors of the Massacre of 1655, and his
that no evil shall happen to you.”
heroism ultimately rolled back the tide of that
These
great calamity, and made it recoil upon its authors.
Gianavello.
It was the morning of the 24th of April, 1655, the
the maxim enacted by the Council of Constance,
deceitful words
did
not impose
upon
He had a wholesome recollection of
day which saw the butchery commenced that we
and so often put in practice in the Yalleys, “ No
have described above.
faith is to be kept with heretics.”
On that same day 500
soldiers were dispatched by the Marquis di Pianeza
Pianeza, he knew,
was the agent of the “ Council of Extirpation.”
to the Yalley of Pora, to massacre its unoffending
Hardly had the next morning broke when the hero-
and unsuspecting inhabitants.
peasant was abroad, scanning with eagle-eye the
Ascending from the
Yalley of the Pelice, they had gained the summit
mountain paths that led into his valley.
of the pass, and were already descending on the
not long till his suspicions were more than justified.
town of Pora, stealthily and swiftly, as a herd
Six
of wolves might descend upon a sheep-fold,
reference to this
as,
says
Leger,
“a
brood
of
vultures
descend upon a flock of harmless doves. ” Gianavello, who
had
known
or
might
Happily
for weeks
before
hundred
men-at-arms, difficult
chosen
with
enterprise,
It was special
were seen
ascending the mountain Cassuleto, to do what their comrades of the previous day had failed to * accom¬ plish.
Gianavello had now mustered a little host
that a storm was gathering, though he knew not
of eighteen,
when or where it would burst, was on the outlook.
muskets and swords, and six with only the sling.
He
saw the
troop,
and
guessed
their
of whom twelve were armed with
errand.
These he divided into three parties, each consisting
There was not a moment to be lost; a little longer,
of four musketeers and two slingers, and he posted
and not a man would be left alive in Pora to carry
them in a defile, through which he saw the invaders
tidings of its fate to the next commune.
must pass.
But
was Gianavello single-handed to attack an army of 500 menl
He stole up-hill, under cover of the
No* sooner had the van of the enemy
entered the gorge than a shower of bullets and stones from invisible hands saluted them.
Every
rocks and trees, and on his way he prevailed on six
bullet and stone did its work.
The first dis¬
peasants, brave men like himself, to join him in
charge brought down an officer and twelve men.
The heroic little band
That volley was succeeded by others equally fatal.
marched on till they were near the troop, then
The cry was raised, “All is lost, save yourselves!”
hiding amid the bushes, they lay in ambush by the
The flight was precipitate, for every bush and rock
repelling the invaders.
side of the path.
The soldiers came on, little sus¬
seemed to vomit forth deadly missiles.
Thus a
pecting the trap into which they were marching.
second ignominious retreat rid the Yalley of Pora
Gianavello and his men fired, and with so unerring
of these murderers.
an aim that seven of the troop fell dead.
Then, re¬
The inhabitants carried their complaints a second
loading their pieces, and dexterously changing their
time
ground, they fired again with a like effect.
“the ferocity of the tiger under the skin of the
The
to Pianeza.
“ Concealing,” as Leger says,
attack was unexpected ; the foe was invisible; the frightened imaginations of Pianezas soldiers mul¬
2
Leger, part ii., chap. 11, p. 186.
490
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
fox,” lie assured the deputies that the attack had
hours in advance, with three companies of regular
been the result of a misunderstanding; that certain
troops, few of whom ever returned.
accusations had
leader, borne along by the rush of his panic-stricken
been
lodged against them, the
Their ferocious
falsity of which had since been discovered, and now
soldiers, was precipitated over the edge of the rock
they might return to their homes, for they had
into the stream, and badly bruised.
nothing to fear.
out and carried to Lucerna, where he died two days
No sooner were they gone than
Pianeza began vigorously to prepare for a third
afterwards,
attack.1
greater torment of mind.
He organised a battalion of from 800 men.
to
900
Next morning, this host made a rapid march
on Rora, seized all the avenues leading into the
He was drawn
in great torment of body,
and yet
Of the three companies
which he led in this fatal expedition, one was composed of Irish,
who
had been banished by
Cromwell, and who met in this distant land the
valley, and chasing the inhabitants to the caves in
death they had inflicted on others in their own,
Monte Friolante, set fire to their dwellings, having
leaving their corpses to fatten those valleys which
first plundered them.
Captain Joshua G-i ana veil o, at
the head of his little troop, saw the enemy enter, but their numbers were so overwhelming that he
were to have been theirs, had they succeeded in purging them of heresy and heretics.3 This series of strange events was now drawing
waited a more favourable moment for attacking
to an end.
them.
This war of his, though waged only with herds¬
The soldiers were retiring, laden with their
booty, and driving before them the cattle of the
men,
peasants.
and
Gianavello knelt down before his hero-
band, and giving thanks to God, who had twice by
had
The fury of Pianeza knew no bounds. brought
the loss of
him
his
nothing
bravest
but
disgrace,
soldiers.
Yictor
Amadeus once observed that “ the skin of every
his hand saved his people, he prayed that the hearts
Yaudois cost him fifteen of his best Piedmontese
and arms of his followers might be strengthened, to
soldiers.”
work yet another deliverance.
best soldiers, and yet not one of the little troop of
the foe.
He then attacked
The spoilers turned and fled up-hill, in
Pianeza had lost some hundreds of his
Gianavello, dead or alive, had he been able to get
the hope of escaping into the Yalley of the Pelice,
into his hands.
throwing away their booty in their flight.
tinue the struggle, but with a much greater army.
When
Nevertheless, he resolved to con¬
they had gained the pass, and begun their descent,
He assembled 10,000, and attacked Rora on three
their flight became
sides at once.
yet more disastrous;
great
stones, tom up and rolled after them, were mingled
While Gianavello was bravely com¬
bating with the first troop of 3,000, on the summit
with the bullets, and did deadly execution upon
of the pass that gives entrance from the Yalley of
them, while the precipices over which they fell in
the Pelice, a second of 6,000 had entered by the
their haste consummated their destruction.
ravine at the foot of the valley; and a third of
The
£ew who survived fled to Villaro.2
1,000 had crossed the mountains that divide Bag-
The Marquis di Pianeza, instead of seeing in these events the finger of God, was only the more
nolo from Rora.
But, alas !
who shall describe
the horrors that followed the entrance of these
inflamed with rage, and the more resolutely bent on
assassins ?
the extirpation of every heretic from the Yalley of
instant overwhelmed the little community.
Rora.
He assembled all the royal troops then
Blood,
burning,
and
distinction was made of age or sex.
rapine in
an No
None had pity
under his command, or which could be spared from
for their tender years;
the massacre in which they were occupied in the
their grey hairs.
•other valleys, in order to surround the little terri¬
once, and thus escaped horrible indignities and tor¬
tory.
This was
now
the fourth
attack
on the
tures.
none had reverence for
Happy they who were slain at
The few spared from the sword were carried
commune of Rora, but the invaders were destined
away as captives, and among these were the wife
once more to recoil before the shock of its heroic
and the three daughters of Gianavello.4
■defenders.
Some 8,000 men had been got under
There was now nothing more in the Yalley of
arms, and were ready to march against Rora, but
Rora for which the patriot-hero could do battle.
the impatience of a certain Captain Mario, who
The light of his hearth was quenched, his village
had signalised himself in the massacre at Bobbio,
was a heap of smoking ruins,
and wished to appropriate the entire glory of the
brethren
enterprise, would not permit him to await the
superior to these accumulated calamities, he marched
movement of the main body.
his little troop over the mountains, to await on the
He marched two
1 Leger, part ii., pp. 186,187. 3 Ibid., part ii., p. 187. Muston, pp. 146, 147.
his fathers and
had fallen by the sword;
but
rising
3 Leger, part ii., p. 188. Muston, pp. 148, 149. 4 Ibid., part ii., p. 189. Monastier, p. 277.
491
SPLENDID SUCCESSES OF THE VAUDOIS. frontier of his country whatever opportunities Pro¬
been assembling to avenge' the massacre of their
vidence might yet open to him of wielding his
brethren.
sword in defence of the ancient liberties and the
In Giaheri, Captain Gianavello had found a comj>anion worthy of himself, and worthy of the cause
glorious faith of his people. It was at this time that Pianeza, intending to
for which he was now in arms.
Of this heroic
deal the finishing blow that should crush the hero
man Leger has recorded that, “ though he possessed
of Bora, wrote tc Gianavello as follows:—I exhort
the courage of a lion, he was as humble as a lamb,
you for the last time to renounce
your heresy.
always giving to God the glory of his victories ;
This is the only hope of your obtaining the pardon
well versed in Scripture, and understanding contro¬
of your prince, and of saving the life of your wife
versy, and of great natural talent.”
and daughters, now my prisoners, and whom, if
had reduced the Vaudois race to all but utter ex¬
you continue obstinate, I will burn alive.
As for
The massacre
termination, and 500 men were all that the two
yourself, my soldiers shall no longer pursue you,
leaders could collect around their standard.
but I will set such a price upon your head, as that
army opposed to them, and at this time in their
were you Beelzebub himself, you shall infallibly be
Valleys, was from
taken; and be assured that, if you fall alive into
sisting of trained and picked soldiers.
my hands, there are no torments with which I will
but an impulse from the God of battles could have
not punish your rebellion.”
moved these two men, with such a handful, to
To these ferocious
15,000 to
20,000
The
strong, con¬ Nothing
threats Gianavello magnanimously and promptly
take the field against such odds.
replied :
are no torments so terrible, no
common hero all would have seemed lost; but the
death so barbarous, that I would not choose rather
courage of these two Christian warriors was based
“ There
than deny my Saviour.
Your threats cannot cause
me to renounce ihy faith; they but fortify me in it.
on faith.
To the eye of a
They believed that God would not per¬
mit his cause to perish, or the lamp of the Valleys
Should the Marquis di Pianeza cause my wife and
to be extinguished; and, few though they were,
daughters to pass through the fire, it can but con¬
they
sume their mortal bodies; their souls I commend
instrumentality to save their country and Church.
knew that God was able by their humble
to God, trusting that he will have mercy on them,
In this faith they unsheathed the sword; and so
and on mine, should it please him that I fall into
valiantly did they wield it, that soon that sword
the marquis’s hands.” 1
became the terror of the Piedmontese armies.
We do not know whether
The
Pianeza was capable of seeing that this was the
ancient promise was fulfilled, “ The people that do
most mortifying defeat he had yet sustained at the
know their God shall be strong and do exploits.”
hands of the peasant-hero of Bora;
and that he
We cannot go into details.
Prodigies of valour
might as well war against the Alps themselves as
were performed by this little host.
against a cause that could infuse a spirit like this
considered the Vaudois to be men,” said Descombies,
“ I had always
into its champions.
Gianavello’s reply, observes
who had joined them, “but I found them lions.”
Leger, “ certified him as a chosen instrument in the
Nothing could withstand the fury of their attack.
hands of God for the recovery of his country seem¬
Post after post and village after village were wrested
ingly lost.”
from the Piedmontese troops.
Gianavello had saved from the wreck of his family his infant son, and his first care was to seek a place of safety for him.
Laying him on his
Soon the enemy
was driven from the upper valleys.
The war now
passed down into the plain of Piedmont, and there it was waged with the same heroism and the same
shoulders, he passed the frozen Alps which separate
success.
the Yalley of Lucerna from France, and entrusted
they fought not
the child to the care of a relative resident at
nearly all of
Queyras, in the Valleys of the French Protestants.
opposed by more than ten times their number.
With the child he carried thither the tidings of the
Their success could hardly be credited had it not
awful massacre of his people.
been recorded by historians whose veracity is above
roused.
Indignation was
Not a few were willing to join his stan¬
They besieged and took several towns, a
few
pitched battles; and in
them they were victorious, though
suspicion, and the accuracy of whose statements
dard, brave spirits like himself; and, with his little
was attested by eye-witnesses.
band greatly recruited, he repassed the Alps in a
did it happen at the close of a day’^ fighting, that
Not unfrequently
few w§eks, to begin his second and more success¬
1,400 Piedmontese dead covered the field of battle,
ful campaign.
while not more than six or seven of the Waldenses
On his arrival in the Valleys he
was joined by Giaheri, under whom a troop had
had fallen.
Such success might well be termed
miraculous; and not only did it appear so to the V Leger, part ii., p. 189.
Vaudois themselves, but even to their foes, who
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
492
could not refrain from expressing their conviction
people ; and foremost among those who did them-
“ that surely God was on the side of the Barbets.”
selves lasting honour by interposing in behalf of a
While the Yaudois were thus heroically main-
people “drawn unto death and ready to perish,”
taining their cause by arms, and rolling back the
was, as we have already said, England, then under
chastisement
the Protectorate of Cromwell.
of
war
on
those from whom its
miseries had come, tidings of their wrongs were
We mentioned in
the previous chapter the Latin letter, the composi-
THE PROTESTANT CHURCH OF ST. JEAN, WALDENSIAN VALLEYS.
travelling to all the Protestant States of Europe,
tion of Milton, which the Protector addressed to
Wherever these tidings came a feeling of horror
the Duke of Savoy.
was evoked, and the cruelty of the Government of
to Louis XIY. of France, soliciting his mediation
Savoy was universally and loudly execrated.
with the duke in behalf of the Yaudois.
All
In addition, Cromwell wrote The
confessed that such a tale of woe they had never
letter is interesting as containing the truly catholic
before heard.
and noble sentiments of England, to which the pen
But the Protestant States did not
content themselves with simply condemning these
of her great poet gave fitting expression :—
deeds; they judged it to be their clear duty to
“ Most Serene and Potent King,
move in behalf of this poor and greatly oppressed
.
.
.
.
.
.
“ After a most barbarous
CROMWELL'S LETTER TO LOUIS XIV.
493
slaughter of persons of both sexes, and of all ages,
New payments have been exacted, and a new fort
a treaty of peace was concluded, or rather secret
has been built to keep them in check, from whence
acts of hostility were committed the more securely
a disorderly soldiery make frequent sallies, and
under the name of a pacification.
plunder or murder all they meet.
The conditions
In addition to
of the treaty were determined in your town of
these things, fresh levies of troops are clandestinely
Pinerolo:
preparing to march against them; and those among
hard conditions enough, but such as
THE PASS OF PRA DEL TOR.
these poor people would gladly have agreed to,
them who profess the Roman Catholic religion have
after the horrible outrages to which they had been
been advised to retire in time; so that everything
■exposed, provided that they had been faithfully
threatens the speedy destruction of such as escaped
observed.
the former massacre.
But they were not observed; the mean¬
ing of the treaty is evaded and violated, by putting
I do therefore beseech and
conjure your Majesty not to suffer such enormities,
a false interpretation upon some of the articles, and
and not to permit (I will not say any prince, for
by straining others.
Many of the complainants
surely such barbarity never could enter into the
have been deprived of their patrimonies, and many
heart of a prince, much less of one of the duke’s
have been forbidden the exercise.of Their religion.
tender age, or into the mind, of his mother), those
494
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM. savage
requested by the Protestant princes, but hurried it
ferocity, who, while they profess to be the servants
accursed
murderers
to
indulge in
such
to a conclusion before the ambassadors from the
and followers of Christ, who came into the world
Protestant States had arrived.
to save sinners, do blaspheme his name, and trans¬
the Protestant cantons of Switzerland were pre¬
The delegates from
gress his mild precepts, by the slaughter of innocent
sent, but they were permitted to act the part of on¬
men.
Oh, that your Majesty, who has the power,
lookers simply. The Grand Monarch took the whole
and who ought to be inclined to use it, may deliver
affair upon himself, and on the 18th of August,
so many supplicants from the hands of murderers,
1655, a treaty of peace was concluded of a very
who are already drunk with blood, and thirst for it
disadvantageous kind. The Waldenses were stripped
again,
and who take pleasure in throwing the
odium of their cruelty upon princes! your Majesty not to
I implore
of their ancient possessions on the right bank of the Pelice, lying toward the plain of Piedmont.
suffer the borders of your
Within the new boundary they were guaranteed
kingdom to be polluted by such monstrous wicked¬
liberty of worship; an amnesty was granted for all
ness.
Remember that this very race of people
threw themselves upon grandfather,
King
the protection of
Henry IY., who
was
your most
offences committed during the war; captives were to be restored when claimed; and they were to be exempt from all imposts for five years,
on the
friendly disposed towards the Protestants, when the
ground that they were so impoverished as not to be
Duke of Lesdiguieres passed victoriously through
able fo pay anything.
their country, as affording the most commodious
When the treaty was published it was found
passage into Italy at the time he pursued the Duke
to contain two clauses that astonished the Pro¬
of Savoy in his retreat across the Alps.
testant world.
The act
or instrument of that submission is still extant
In the preamble the Yaudois were
styled rebels, whom it had pleased their prince gra¬
among the public records of your kingdom, in
ciously to receive back into favour; and in the body
which it is provided that the Yaudois shall not be
of the deed was an article, which no one recollected
transferred to any other government, but upon the
to have heard mentioned during the negotiations,
same condition that they were received under the
empowering the French to construct a fort above
protection of your invincible grandfather.
As sup¬
plicants of his grandson, they now implore the fulfilment of this compact.
*
*
*
*
La Torre.
This looked like a preparation for re¬
newing the war. By this treaty the Protestant States were out¬
*
*
*
witted ;
“ Given at our Court at Westminster, this 26 th
their ambassadors
were duped; and the
poor Yaudois were left as much as ever in the power of the Duke of Savoy and of the Council for the
of May, 1658.” The French King undertook the mediation, as
Propagation of the Faith, and the Extirpation of Heretics.
CHAPTER XIII. THE EXILE.
New Troubles—Louis XIY. and his Confessor—Edict against the Vaudois—Their Defenceless Condition—Their Fight and Victory—They Surrender—The Whole Nation Thrown into Prison—Utter Desolation of the Land—Horrors of the Imprisonment—Their Release—Journey across the Alps—Its Hardships—Arrival of the Exiles at Geneva— Their Hospitable Reception. After the great Massacre of 1655, the Church of
them. Ceaseless intrigues were continually breeding
the Yalleys had rest from persecution for thirty
new alarms, and the Yaudois had often to till their
years.
fields and prune their vines with their musket slung
This period, however, can be styled one of
rest only when contrasted with the frightful storms
across their shoulders. Many of their chief men were
which had convulsed the era that immediately pre¬
sent into exile.
ceded it.
The enemies of the Yaudois still found
Leger, whose services to their people were too great
innumerable ways in which to annoy and harass
ever to be forgiven, had sentence of death passed on
Captain Gianavello and Pastor
NEW AND ATROCIOUS EDICT. them.
Leger was “ to be strangled; then his body
495
to his victory ? Victor Amadeus deigned no reply to
was to be hung by one foot on a gibbet for four-
the French ambassador.
and-twenty hours; and, lastly, his head was to be
it received an evasive answer; it was urged a third
cut off and publicly exposed at San Giovanni.
The request was repeated ;
His
time, accompanied by a hint from the potent Louis
name was to be inserted in the list of noted out¬
that if it was not convenient for the duke to purge
Gianavello
his dominions, the King of France would do it for
retired to Geneva, where he continued to watch
laws; his houses were to be burned.”1
him with an army of 14,000 men, and would keep
with unabated interest the fortunes of his people.
the Yalleys for his pains.
Leger became pastor of a congregation at Leyden,
treaty was immediately concluded between the duke
where he crowned a life full of labour and suffering
and the French King, in which the latter promised
This was enough.
A
for the Gospel, by a work which has laid all Chris¬
an armed force to enable the former to reduce the
tendom under obligations to him; we refer to his
Yaudois to the Roman obedience, or to exterminate
History of the Churches of the Vaudois—a noble
them.2
monument of his Church’s martyr-heroism and his
edict was promulgated in the Yalleys:—
own Christian patriotism.
“ I. The Yaudois shall henceforth and for ever
Hardly had Leger unrolled to the world’s gaze the record of the last awful tempest which had smitten the Valleys, when the clouds returned, and were seen rolling up in dark, thunderous masses against this devoted land.
Former storms had
assailed them from the south, having collected in the Vatican; the tempest now apj3roaching had its first rise on the north of the Alps.
It was the year
1685; Louis XIY. was nearing the grave, and with the great audit in view he inquired of his confessor by what good deed as a king he might atone for his many sins as a man.
The answer was ready.
He
was told that he must extirpate Protestantism in France. obsequiously before the shaven crown of priest, while Europe was
trembling before his armies.
Louis XIY. did as he was commanded; he revoked the Edict of Nantes.
This gigantic crime, which
inflicted so much misery on the Protestants in the first place, and brought so many woes on the throne and nation of France in the second, will be recorded It is the nation of the Yaudois, and
the persecution which the counsel of Father la Chaise brought upon them, with which we have here to do.
Wishing for companionship in the
sanguinary work of testantism,
cease and discontinue all the exercises of their religion. “ II. They are forbidden to have religious meet¬ ings, under pain of death, and penalty of confiscation of all their goods. “ III. All their ancient privileges are abolished. “ IY. All the churches, prayer-houses, and other edifices consecrated to their worship shall be razed to the ground. “V. All the pastors and schoolmasters of the Yalleys are required either to embrace Romanism or to quit the country within fifteen days, under pain of death and confiscation of goods. “ YI. All the children born, or to be born, of Pro¬
The Grand Monarch, as the age styled him, bowed
in its place.
On the 31st of January, 1686, the following
purging France from Pro¬
Louis XIY.
sent an ambassador to
the Duke of Savoy, with a request that he would deal with the Waldenses as he was now dealing with the Huguenots.
The young and naturally
humane Victor Amadeus was at the moment on more than usually friendly terms with his subjects of the Yalleys.
They had served bravely under his
standard in his late war with the Genoese, and he
testant parents, shall be compulsorily trained up as Roman Catholics.
Every such child yet unborn
shall, within a week after its birth, be brought to the cure of its parish, and admitted of the Roman Catholic Church, under pain, on the part of the mother, of being publicly whipped with rods, and on the part of the father of labouring five years in the galleys. “ VII. The Yaudois pastors shall abjure the doc¬ trine they have hitherto publicly preached; shall receive a salary, greater by one-third than that which they previously enjoyed; and one-half thereof shall go in reversion to their widows. “ VIII. All Protestant foreigners settled in Pied* mont are ordered either to become Roman Catholics* or to quit the country within fifteen days. “ IX. By a special act of his great and paternal clemency, the sovereign will permit persons to sell* in this interval, the property they may have acquired in Piedmont, provided the sale be made to Roman Catholic purchasers.”
had but recently written them a letter of thanks. How could he unsheathe his sword against the men whose devotion and valour had so largely contributed 1 Leger, part ii., p. 275.
This monstrous edict seemed to sound the knell of the Yaudois as a Protestant people. 2 Monastier, p. 311.
Their oldest.
496
HISTOEY OF PROTESTANTISM.
traditions did not contain a decree so cruel and unrighteous,
nor
one that
menaced them with
The proposal to abandon their ancient inheritance, coming from such a quarter, startled the Waldenses.
so complete and summary a destruction as that
It produced, at first, a division of opinion in the
which now seemed to impend over them.
Yalleys ; but ultimately they united in rejecting it.
was to he done1? delegates
to
What
Their first step was to send
Turin,
respectfully
to
remind the
They remembered the exploits their fathers had done, and the wonders God had wrought in the
duke that the Vaudois had inhabited the Yalleys
mountain passes of Bora, in the defiles of Angrogna,
from the earliest times; that they had led forth theii
and in the field of the Pra del Tor, and their faith
herds upon their mountains before the House of
reviving, they resolved, in a reliance on the same
Savoy had ascended the throne of Piedmont; that
Almighty Arm which had been stretched out in their
treaties and oaths, renewed from reign to reign, had
behalf in former days, to defend their hearths and
solemnly secured them in the freedom of their
altars.
worship and other liberties; and that the honour
ready for resistance.
of princes and the stability of States lay in the
Good Friday, they renewed their covenant, and on
faithful observance of such covenants; and they
Easter Sunday their pastors dispensed to them the
They repaired the old defences, and made On the 17th of April, being
prayed him to consider what reproach the throne
Communion.
and kingdom of Piedmont would incur if he should
the Yalleys partook of the Lord’s Supper before
become the executioner of those of whom he was
their great dispersion.
the natural protector.
The Protestant cantons of
This was the last time the sons of
Yictor Amadeus II. had pitched his camp on the
Switzerland joined their mediation to the inter¬
plain of San Gegonzo before the Yaudois Alps.
cessions of the Waldenses.
army consisted of five regiments of horse and foot.
And when the almost
His
incredible edict came to be known in Germany and
He was here joined by the French auxiliaries who
Holland, these countries threw their shield over the
had crossed the Alps, consisting of some dozen bat¬
Yalleys, by interceding with the duke that he would
talions,
not inflict so great a wrong as to cast out from a
15,000 and 20,000 men.
land which was theirs by irrevocable charters, a
given on Easter Monday, at break of day, by three
the united force amounting to between The signal was to be
people whose only crime was that they worshipped
cannon-shots, fired from the hill of Bricherasio.
as their fathers had worshipped, before they passed
the appointed morning, the Yalleys of Lucerna and
under the sceptre of the duke. parties pleaded in vain.
All these powerful
San Martino, forming the two
On
extreme opposite
Ancient charters, solemn
points of the territory, were attacked, the first by
treaties, and oaths, made in the face of Europe,
the Piedmontese host, and the last by the French,
the long-tried loyalty and the many services of the
under the command of General Catinat, a distin¬
Yaudois to the House of Savoy, could not stay the
guished soldier.
uplifted arm of the duke, or prevent the execution
ten hours, and ended in the complete repulse of the
of the monstrously criminal decree.
In San Martino the fighting lasted
In a little
French, who retired at night with a loss of more
while the armies of France and Savoy arrived before
than 500 killed and wounded, while the Yaudois
the Yalleys.
had lost only two.1
At no previous period of their history, perhaps,
On the following day the
French, burning with rage at their defeat, poured a
had the Waldenses been so entirely devoid of human
more
aid as now.
swept along the valley, burning, plundering, and
Gianavello, whose stout heart and
numerous army into San Martino,
which
brave arm had stood them in such stead formerly,
massacring,
was in exile.
descended into Pramol, continuing the same indis¬
Cromwell, whose potent voice had
and
having
crossed
the mountains
stayed the fury of the great massacre, was in his
criminate and exterminating vengeance.
grave.
rage of the sword were added other barbarities and
An avowed Papist filled the throne of
Great Britain.
It was going ill at this hour with
Protestantism everywhere.
outrages too shocking to be narrated.2
of
The issue by arms being deemed uncertain, despite
Scotland were hiding on the moors, or dying in the
the vast disparity of strength, treachery, on a great
Grass-market of Edinburgh.
The Covenanters
To the
France,
Piedmont,
and Italy were closing in around the Yalleys ; every
scale,
was
now
had
recourse
to.
Wherever,
throughout the Yalleys, the Yaudois were found
path guarded, all their succours cut off, an over¬
strongly posted, and ready for battle, they wei^e
whelming force waited the signal to massacre them.
told that their brethren in the neighbouring com¬
So desperate did their situation appear to the Swiss
munes had submitted, and that it was vain for
envoys, that they counselled them to “ transport elsewhere the torch of the Gospel, and not keep it here to be extinguished in blood.”
1 Monastier, p. 317. 2 Muston, p. 200,
Must on, p. 199.
IMPRISONMENT AND EXILE.
497
them, isolated and alone as they now were, to con¬
been wont to dart his
tinue their resistance.
and let fall at
When they sent deputies to
head-quarters to inquire—and passes were freely supplied to-them for that purpose—they were assured
friendly mantle of his
purple shadows. We know not if ever before an entire nation
that the submission had been universal, and that
were in prison at once.
none save themselves were now in arms.
of the Waldensian
They
kindling glories at dawn,
eve the
Yet now it was so.
All
race that remained from the
were assured, moreover, that should they follow the
sword of their executioners were immured in the
example of the rest of their nation, all their ancient
dungeons of Piedmont!
liberties would be held intact.1
the father and his family, the patriarch and the
This base artifice
The pastor and his flock,
was successfully practised at each of the Yaudois
stripling had passed in, in one great procession, and
posts in succession, till at length the Yalleys had
exchanged their grand rock-walled Yalleys, their
We cannot blame the Waldenses,
tree-embowered homes, and their sunlit peaks, for
who were the victims of an act so dishonourable and
the filth, the choking air, and the Tartarean walls
all capitulated.
vile as hardly to be credible; alas!
was a fatal one,
but the mistake,
and had to be
expiated
of an Italian gaol. prison %
afterwards by the endurance of woes a hundred
“ middle passage. ”
times more dreadful than any they would have en¬
food nor clothing.
countered in the rudest campaign.
was fetid.
The instant
And how were they treated in
As the African slave was treated on the They had a sufficiency of neither The bread dealt out to them
They had putrid water to drink.
They
consequence of the submission was a massacre which
were exposed to the sun by day and to the cold at
extended to all their Yalleys, and which was similar
night.
in its horrors to the great butchery of 1655.
pavement, or on straw so full of vermin that the
that massacre upwards of 3,000 perished.
In The
remainder of the nation, amounting, according to
They were compelled to sleep on the bare
stone-floor was preferable.
Disease broke out in
these horrible abodes, and the mortality was fearful.
Arnaud, to between 12,000 and 15,000 souls, were
“ When they entered these dungeons,” says Henri
consigned to the various gaols and fortresses of
Arnaud,
Piedmont.2
taineers, but when, at the intercession of the S wiss
We now behold these famous Yalleys, for the first time in their history, empty. burns no longer.
The ancient lamp
The school of the prophets in the
Pra del Tor is razed.
No smoke is seen rising from
cottage, and no psalm is heard ascending from dwell¬ ing or sanctuary.
No herdsman leads forth his
“they counted
14,000
healthy
moun¬
deputies, their prisons were opened, 3,000 skeletons only crawled out.”
These few words portray a
tragedy so awful that the imagination recoils from the contemplation of it. Well, at length the persecutor looses their chains, and opening their prison doors he sends forth these
kine on the mountains, and no troop of worshippers,
captives—the
obedient to the summons of the Sabbath-bell, climbs
people.
the mountain
people again their ancient Yalleys ?
To rekindle
the fire on their ancestral hearths'?
To rebuild
paths.
The vine
flings wide her
arms, but no skilful hand is nigh boughs and prune her luxuriance.
to train her The chestnut-
woe-worn
remnant
of
a
gallant
But to what are they sent forth ?
“ the holy and beautiful
To
house ” in which their
tree rains its fruits, but there is no group of merry
fathers had praised God h
children to gather them, and they lie rotting on the
thrust out of prison only to be sent into exile—to
ground.
Yaudois a living death.
The terraces of the hills, that were wont
to overflow with flowers and fruitage, and which
Ah, no !
The barbarity of 1655 was repeated.
They are
It was in
presented to the eye a series of hanging gardens,
December (1686) that the decree of liberation was
now torn and breached, shoot in a mass of ruinous
issued in favour of these
rubbish down the slope.
escaped the sword, and now survived the not less
Nothing is seen but dis¬
3,000 men who had
mantled forts, and the blackened ruins of churches
deadly epidemic of the prison.
and hamlets.
every one knows, the snow and ice are piled to a
A dreary silence overspreads the land,
At that season, as
and the beasts of the field strangely multiply. A few
fearful depth on the Alps;
herdsmen, hidden here and there in forests and
threaten with death the too adventurous traveller
and daily tempests
holes of the rocks, are now the only inhabitants.
who would cross their summits.
Monte Yiso, from out the silent vault, looks down
season that these poor captives, emaciated with
with astonishment at the absence of that ancient
sickness, weakened by hunger, and shivering from
race over whom, from immemorial time, he had
insufficient clothing, were commanded to rise up and cross the snowy hills.
It was at this
They began their journey
on the afternoon of that very day on which the 1 Muston, p. 202.
26
2 Monastier, p. 320.
order arrived; for their enemies would permit no
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
498 delay.
One hundred and fifty of them died on
their first march.
At night they halted at the foot
of the Mont Cenis.
Next morning, when they
at Geneva on Christmas Day, 1686, having spent about three weeks on the journey.
They were fol¬
lowed by small parties, who crossed the Alps one
surveyed the Alps they saw evident signs of a
after the other, being let out of prison at different
gathering tempest, and they besought the officer in
times.
charge to permit them, for the sake of their sick
that the last band of these emigrants reached the
and aged, to remain where they were till the storm
hospitable gates of Geneva.
had spent its rage.
way-worn, sick, emaciated, and faint through hun¬
With heart harder than the
rocks they were to traverse,
the officer ordered
them to resume their journey.
That troop of
ger.
It was not till the end of February, 1687, But in what a plight 1
Of some the tongue was swollen in their
mouth, and they were unable to speak; of others
emaciated beings began the ascent, and were soon
the arms were bitten with the frost, so that they
struggling with the blinding drifts
could not stretch them out to
whirlwinds of the mountain.
and fearful
accept the charity
Eighty-six of their
offered to them; and some there were who dropped
number, succumbing to the tempest, dropped by the
down and expired on the very threshold of the city,
way.
Where they lay down, there they died.
No
“ finding,” as one has said, “ the end of their life at
relative or friend was permitted to remain behind
the beginning of their liberty.”
to watch their last moments or tender them needed
was the reception given them by the city of Calvin.
Most hospitable
succour.
That ever-thinning procession moved on
A deputation of the principal citizens of Geneva,
and on over the white hills, leaving it to the falling
headed by the patriarch Gianavelio, who still lived,
snow to give burial to their stricken companions.
went out to meet them on the frontier, and taking
When spring opened the passes of the Alps, alas !
them to their homes, they vied with each other
what ghastly memorials met the eye of the horror-
which should show
stricken traveller.
Generous city !
Strewed along the track were the
now unshrouded corpses of these poor exiles, the dead
them the
greatest kindness.
If he who shall give a cup of cold
water to a disciple shall in nowise lose his reward,
child lying fast locked in the arms of the dead mother.
how much more shalt thou be requited for this thy
But why should we prolong this harrowing tale h
kindness to the suffering and sorrowing exiles of the
The first company of these miserable exiles arrived
Saviour!
CHAPTER
XIV,
RETURN TO THE VALLEYS.
Longings after their Valleys—Thoughts of Returning—Their Reassembling—Cross the Leman—Begin their March —The “Eight Hundred’'—Cross Mont Cenis—Great Victory in the Valley of the Dora—First View of their Mountains—Worship on the Mountain-top—Enter their Valleys—Pass their First Sunday at Prali—Worship. We now open the history.
bright page of
the Vaudois
more so, seeing their destitution was greater.
Nor
We have seen nearly 3,000 Waldensian
were the Vaudois ungrateful. “Next to God, whose
exiles enter the gates of Geneva, the feeble remnant
tender mercies have preserved us from being entirely
of a population of from 14,000 to 16,000.
One
city could not contain them all, and arrangements were made for distributing the expatriated Vaudois among the Reformed cantons. the Edict of Nantes had thousands
The revocation of
a little before thrown
of French Protestants upon
the hos¬
consumed,” said they to their kind benefactors, “ we are indebted to you alone for life and liberty.” Several of the German princes opened their States to these exiles ;
but the influence of their great
enemy, Louis XIV., was then too powerful in these parts to permit of their residence being altogether
pitality of the Swiss; and now the arrival of the
an agreeable one.
Waldensian refugees brought with it yet heavier
emissaries, and their patrons tampered with, they
Constantly watched by his
demands on the public and private charity of the
were moved about from place to place.
cantons; but
tion of their permanent settlement in the future
the
response of
Protestant
Hel¬
The ques¬
vetia was equally cordial in the case of the last
was beginning to be anxiously discussed.
comers as in that of the first, and perhaps even
project
of
carrying
them
across
the
sea
The in
THE YAUDOIS CROSSING LAKE LEMAN J3Y NIGHT.
(See
p. 500.)
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
500
the ships of Holland, and planting them at the
of the Vallais, in concert with the Savoyards, at
Cape,
the first alarm seized the Bridge of St. Maurice,
was even talked of.
The idea of being
separated for ever from their native land, dearer in
the key of the Rhone Valley, and
exile than when they dwelt in it, gave them in¬
expedition.
tolerable anguish.
pelled to abandon their project.
Was it not possible to reassem¬
To extinguish all hopes of their return to the
ble their scattered colonies, and marching back to their Valleys, rekindle them?
their ancient lamp in
This was the question which, after three
years of exile, the Vaudois began to put to them¬
stopped the
Thus were they, for the time, com¬
Valleys, they were anew distributed over GermanyBut
scarcely
had
this
second dispersion
been
effected, when war broke out; the French troops
selves.
As they wandered by the banks of the
overran the Palatinate, and the Vaudois settled
Rhine,
or
there, dreading, not without reason, the soldiers of
traversed
the
German
plains,
they
feasted their imaginations on their far-off homes.
Louis XIV., retired before them, and retook the
The chestnuts shading their former abodes, the
road
vine
pitying these poor exiles, tossed from country to
bending gracefully over their portal, and
to
Switzerland.
The Protestant cantons,
the meadow in front, which the crystal torrent kept
country by
perpetually
more in their former allotments.
bright, and
whose murmur sweetly
blended with the evening psalm, all rose before their eyes.
They never knelt to pray but it was with
political storms,
Vaudois, and with eyes uplifted they waited the issue.
They saw
where slept their martyred
Attempts
Orange,
mount the
Savoy
saw
had
been
made
by
the
Duke
of
to
Meanwhile, the
scenes were shifting rapidly around the expatriated
their faces turned toward their grand mountains, fathers.
settled them once
their
their
protector, William
throne of
j>owerful
enemy,
England. Louis
of
They
XIV.,
at¬
people their territory by settling in it a mongrel
tacked at once by the emperor and humiliated
race, partly Irish and partly Piedmontese ; but the
by
land knew not the strangers, and refused to yield
Victor
Amadeus
its strength to them.
Savoy,
seeing
The Vaudois had sent spies
the
Dutch.
They
saw
withdraw
that
their his
he needed
own
soldiers
Prince from
them to defend
to examine its condition ;l its fields lay untilled, its
Piedmont.
vines unpruned, nor had its ruins been raised up;
Hand was opening their path back to their own
it was almost as desolate as on the day when its
land.
sons had been driven out of it.
to arrange a second time for their departure.
It seemed to them
At length the yearning of their heart could no repressed.
Encouraged by these tokens,
they began
The place of appointed rendezvous was a wood
that the land was waiting their return. longer be
It seemed to them that an invisible
The march back to their
on the northern shore of the Leman, near the town of Noyon.
For days before they continued to con¬
Valleys is one of the most wonderful exploits ever
verge, in scattered bands, and by stealthy marches,
performed by any people.
on the selected point.
It is famous in history
On the decisive evening, the
The
16th of August, 1689, a general muster took place
parallel event which will recur to the mind of the
under cover of the friendly wood of Prangins.
by the name
of
“La Rentree Glorieuse..”
scholar is, of course, the retreat of “the ten thousand
Having by solemn prayer commended their enter¬
Greeks.”
prise
be
The patriotism and bravery of both will
admitted, but a
candid comparison will, we
to
God, they embarked
crossed by star-light.
on the lake, and
Their means of transport
think, incline one to assign the palm of heroism to
would have been deficient but for a circumstance
the return of “the eight hundred.”
which threatened at first to obstruct their expedi¬
The day fixed on for beginning their expedition
tion, but which, in the issue, greatly facilitated it.
Quitting their various
Curiosity had drawn numbers to this part of the
cantonments in Switzerland, and travelling by by¬
lake, and the boats that brought hither the sight¬
was the 10th of June, 1688.
roads, they traversed the country by night, and
seers furnished more amply the means of escape to
assembled at Bex, a small town in the southern
the Vaudois.
extremity of the territory of Bern.
Their secret
At this crisis, as on so many previous ones, a
march was soon known to the senates of Zurich,
distinguished man arose to lead them.
Bern, and Geneva; and, foreseeing that the depar¬
Arnaud, whom we see at the head of the 800 fight¬
ture of the exiles would compromise them with the
ing jpnen who are setting
Popish powers, their Excellencies took measures to
possessions, had at first discharged the office of
prevent it.
pastor, but the troubles of his nation compelling him
A bark laden with arms for their use
was seized on the Lake of Geneva.
The inhabitants
for
their native
to leave the Valleys, he had served in the armies of the Prince of Orange.
1 Monastier, p. 336.
out
Henri
Of decided piety, ardent
patriotism, and of great decision and courage, he
501
THE “GLORIOUS RETURN/ presented a beautiful instance of the union of the
August, that they encountered for the first time a
pastoral and the military character.
considerable body of regular troops.
It is hard to
say whether his soldiers listened more reverentially
As they traversed the valley they were met by
to the exhortations he at times delivered to them
a peasant, of whom they inquired whether they
from the pulpit, or to the orders he gave them on
could have provisions by paying for them.
the field of battle.
on this way,” said the man, in a tone that had a
Arriving on the southern shore of the lake,
“ Come
slight touch of triumph in it, “you will find all
these 800 Yaudois bent their knees in prayer,
that you want;
and then began their march through a country
supper for you.”2
covered with foes.
Salabertrand, where the Col dAlbin closes in upon
Before them rose the great
they are preparing an excellent They were led into the defile of
snow-clad mountains over which they were to fight
the stream of the Dora,
their way.
aware they found themselves in presence of the
Arnaud arranged his little host into
and before they were
three companies—an advanced-guard, a centre, and
French army,
a rear-guard.
fallen—illumined far and wide the opposite slope.
Seizing some of the chief men as
whose camp-fires—for night had
hostages, they traversed the Yalley of the Arve to
Retreat was impossible.
Sallenches, and emerged from its dangerous passes
strong,
just as the men of the latter place had completed
supported by a miscellaneous
their preparations for resisting them.
followers.
Occasional
flanked by the
The French were 2,500 garrison of Exiles, crowd
of
and
armed
skirmishes awaited them, but mostly their march
Under favour of the darkness, they advanced to
was unopposed, for the terror of God had fallen
the bridge which crossed the Dora, on the opposite
upon the inhabitants of Savoy.
bank of which the French were encamped.
Holding on their
way they climbed the Haut Luce Alp,1 and next
To the
challenge, “Who goes there ?” the Yaudois answered,
that of Bon Homme, the neighbouring Alp to Mont
“Friends.” The instant reply shouted out was “Kill,
Blanc; sinking sometimes to their middle in snow.
kill!” followed by a tremendous fire, which was
Steep precipices and treacherous glaciers subjected
kept up for a quarter of an hour.
them to both toil and danger.
They were wet
however, for Arnaud had bidden his soldiers lie flat
at times fell in
on their faces, and permit the deadly shower to pass
through with the rain, torrents.
which
Their provisions were growing scanty,
over them.
It did no harm,
But now a division of the French
but their supply was recruited by the shepherds of
appeared in their rear, thus placing them between
the mountains, who brought them bread and cheese,
two fires.
while their huts served them at night.
that all must be risked, shouted out, “Courage ! the
They
Some one in the Yaudois army, seeing
renewed their hostages at every stage; sometimes
bridge is won! ”
they “caged”—to use their own phrase—a Capuchin
started to their feet, rushed across the bridge sword
monk, and at other times an influential landlord,
in hand, and clearing it, they threw themselves
but all were treated with uniform kindness.
with the impetuosity of a whirlwind upon the
Having crossed the Bon Homme, which divides
At these wmrds the Y audois
enemy’s entrenchments.
Confounded by the sud¬
the basin of the Arve from that of the Isere, they
denness of the attack, the French could only use the
descended, on Wednesday, the fifth day of their
butt-ends of their muskets to parry the blows.
march, into the valley of the latter stream.
fighting lasted two hours, and ended in the total
They
The
had looked forward to this stage of their journey
rout of the French.
with great misgivings, for the numerous population
Larrey, after a fruitless attempt to rally his soldiers,
of the Yal Isere was known to be well armed, and
fled wounded to Briangon, exclaiming, “Is it pos¬
decidedly hostile, and might be expected to oppose
sible that I have lost the battle and my honour f’
their march, but the enemy was “still as a stone” till the people had passed over.
They next traversed
Mont Iseran, and the yet more formidable Mont
Their leader, the Marquis de
Soon thereafter the moon rose and showed the field of battle to the victors.
On it, stretched out
in death, lay 600 French soldiers, besides officers
Cenis, and finally descended into the Yalley of the
and strewn promiscuously with the fallen, all over
Dora.
the field, were arms, military stores, and provisions.
It was here,
on Saturday,
the
24th of
Thus had been suddenly opened an armoury and magazines to men who stood much in need both of 1 So named by the author of the Rentree, from the village at its foot, but which without doubt, says Monastier (p. 349), “ is either the Col Joli (7,240 feet high) or the Col de la Fenetre, or Portetta, as it was named to Mr. Brockedon, who has visited these countries, and followed the same road as the Yaudois/5
weapons and of food. themselves,
Having amply replenished
they collected what they could not
carry away into a heap, and set fire to it. 2 Monastier, p. 352.
The
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
502 loud
and
multifarious
noises
formed
by
the
posted to guard the pass, but who took flight at
explosions of the gunpowder, the sounding of the
the approach of the Vaudois, thus opening to them
trumpets, and the shouting of the captains, who,
the gate of one of the grandest of their Valleys,
throwing their caps in the air, exclaimed, “ Thanks
San Martino.
be to the Lord of hosts who hath given us the
out from the shores of the Leman they crossed the
On the twelfth day after setting
victory/’ echoed like the thunder of heaven, and
frontier, and stood once more within the limits of
reverberating from
most
their inheritance. When they mustered at Balsiglia,
extraordinary and exciting scene, and one that is
the first Vaudois village which they entered, in the
seldom witnessed amid these usually quiet moun¬
western extremity of San Martino, they found that
tains.
hill to hill, formed a
This great victory cost the Waldenses only
fatigue, desertion,
and battle had reduced their
numbers from 800 to 700.
fifteen killed and twelve wounded. Their fatigue was great, but they feared to halt
Their first Sunday after their return was passed
on the battle-field, and so, rousing those Avho had
at the village of Prali.
already sunk into sleep, they commenced climbing
the church of Prali alone remained standing; of
the lofty Mont Sci.
the others only the ruins were to be seen.
The day was breaking as
they gained the summit.
It was Sunday,
and
resolved to
Of all their sanctuaries
recommence
this
They
day their
ancient
Henri Arnaud, halting till all should assemble,
and scriptural worship.
pointed out to them, just as they were becoming
its Popish ornaments, one half of the little army,
visible in the morning light, the mountain-tops of
laying
their own land.
the edifice, while
Welcome sight to their longing
Bathed in the radiance of the rising sun, it
the
seemed to them, as one snowy peak began to bum
all.
eyes !
down
church
their
Purging the church of
arms
at
the
door,
entered
the other half stood without,
being
too
small
to
contain
them
Henri Arnaud, the soldier-pastor, mounting
after another, that the mountains were kindling
a table which was placed in the porch, preached
into joy at the return of their long-absent sons.
to them.
This army of soldiers resolved itself into a congre¬
ing the
gation of worshippers, and the summit of Mont Sci
cast us off for ever 1
became their church.
Kneeling on the mountain-
top, the battle-field below them, and the solemn
smoke
They began
their worship by chant¬
74th Psalm—“O
God, why hast thou
Why doth thine anger
against the sheep of thy pasture'?”
The preacher then took as his text the
&c
129th
and sacred peaks of the Col du Pis, the Col la
Psalm—“ Many a time have they afflicted me from
Ve'chera, and the glorious pyramid of Monte Yiso
my youth, may Israel now say.”
looking down upon them in reverent silence, they
history of his people behind him, so to speak, and
humbled themselves before the Eternal, confessing
the reconquest of their land before him, we can
their sins,
many
imagine how thrilling every word of his discourse
Seldom has worship more sincere or
must have been, and how it must have called up
and
deliverances.
giving thanks for
their
The wonderful
more rapt been offered than that which this day
the glorious achievements of their fathers, provoking
ascended from this congregation of warrior-worship¬
the generous emulation of their sons.
pers gathered under the dome-like vault that rose
was closed by these 700 warriors chanting in magni¬
over them.
ficent chorus the psalm from which their leader had
Refreshed by the devotions of the Sunday, and exhilarated by the victory of the day before, the
The worship
preached. So passed their first Sunday in their land. To many it seemed significant that here the
heroic band now rushed down to take possession of
returned exiles should spend their first
their inheritance, from which the single Valley of
and resume their sanctuary services.
Clusone only parted them.
Sunday, They re¬
It was three years and
membered how this same village of Prali had been
a half since they had crossed the Alps, a crowd of
the scene of a horrible outrage at the time of
exiles, worn to skeletons by sickness and confine¬
their exodus.
ment, and now they were returning a marshalled
a singularly pious man, had been discovered by
host, victorious over the army of France, and ready
the soldiers
to encounter that of Piedmont.
and being dragged forth,
They traversed
The as
Pastor of Prali, M.
he was
praying under
Leidet, a rock,
he was first tortured
the Clusone, a plain of about two miles in width,
and mutilated, and then hanged; his last words
watered by the broad, clear, blue-tinted Germag-
being, “ Lord Jesus, receive my spirit.”
nasca, and bounded by hills, which offer to the eye
surely appropriate, after the silence of three years
a succession of terraces, clothed with the richest
and a half, during which the rage of the persecutor
It was
vines, mingled with, the chestnut and the apple-
had forbidden the preaching of the glorious Gospel,
tree.
that its reopening should take place in the pulpit
They entered the narrow defile of Pis, where
a detachment of Piedmontese soldiers had been
of the martyr Leidet.
503
CHAPTER XV. FINAL RE-ESTABLISHMENT IN THEIR VALLEYS.
Cross the Col Julien—Seize Bobbio—Oath of Strength—Beauty and Grandeur of San Enemy—Depart for the Winter—Return Enemy Driven Back—Final Assault with
Sibaud—March to Villaro—Guerilla War—Retreat to La Balsiglia—Its Martino—Encampment on the Balsiglia—Surrounded—Repulse of the of French and Piedmontese Army in Spring—The Balsiglia Stormed— Cannon—Wonderful Deliverance of the Vaudois—Overtures of Peace.
The Vaudois had entered the land, but they had
given to them by the God of heaven, as Palestine
not yet got possession of it.
had been to the Jews.
They were a mere
handful; they would have to face the large and well-appointed army of Piedmont, French.
aided by the
But their great leader to his courage
added faith.
The
“ cloud ”
which
had
guided
Their
next
march
inhabitants.
and abysses,
suddenly checked.
them forth to battle, victory.
to Villaro,
La Torre at. the entrance of the valley. they stormed and took,
them over the great mountains, with their snows would cover their camp, and lead
was
which is
situated half-way between Bobbio at the head and This town
driving away the new
But here their career of conquest was The next day a strong reinforce¬
and bring them in with
ment of regular troops coming up, the Vaudois
It was not surely that they might die in
were under the necessity of abandoning Villaro,
the land, that they had been able to make so mar¬
and falling back on Bobbio.1
vellous a march back to it.
now became parted into two bands, and for many
Full of these courageous
This patriot army
hopes, the “ seven hundred ” now addressed them¬
weeks had to wage a sort of guerilla war on the
selves to their great task.
mountains.
They began to climb the Col Julien, which sepa¬
France on the one side, and Piedmont
on the other, poured in soldiers, in the hope of
rates Prali from the fertile and central valley of
exterminating this handful of warriors.
the Waldenses, that cf Lucerna.
vAs they toiled
tions and hardships which they endured were as
up and were now near the summit of the pass, the
great as the victories which they won in their daily
The priva¬
Piedmontese soldiers, who had been stationed there,
skirmishes were marvellous.
shouted out, “Come on, ye Barbets; we guard the
conquering,
pass, and there are 3,000 of us !”
What though a hundred of the enemy were slain
on.
They did come
To force the entrenchments and put to flight
the garrison was the work of a moment.
In the
their
But though always
ranks were
rapidly thinning.
for one Waldensian who fell? could recruit their numbers,
The Piedmontese the Vaudois could
evacuated camp the Vaudois found a store of am¬
not add to theirs.
munition and provisions, which to them was a
tion nor provisions, save what they took from their
most seasonable
enemies • and, to add to their perplexities, winter
booty.
Descending rapidly the
They had now neither ammuni¬
slopes and precipices of the great mountain, they
was
surprised and took the town of Bobbio, which
beneath its snows, and leave them without food or
nestles at its foot.
shelter.
Driving out the Popish inhabi¬
near,
which
would
bury
their
mountains
A council of war was held, and it was
tants to whom it had been made over, they took
ultimately resolved to
possession of their ancient dwellings, and paused a
Martino, and entrench themselves on La Balsiglia.
little while to rest after the march and conflict of the previous days.
Here their second
Sunday
was passed, and public worship again celebrated,
repair to
the Valley of
This brings us to the last heroic stand of the returned exiles.
But first let us sketch the natural
strength and grandeur of the spot on which that
the congregation chanting their psalm to the clash
stand was made.
of arms.
western extremity of San Martino, which in point
On the day following, repairing to the
The Balsiglia is situated at the
“ Rock of Sibaud,” where their fathers had pledged
of grandeur yields to few things in the Waldensian
their faith to God and to one another, they renewed
Alps.
on the same sacred spot their ancient oath, swear¬
width, having as its floor the richest meadow-land ;
ing with uplifted hands to abide steadfastly in the
and for walls, mountains superbly hung with ter¬
profession of the Gospel, to stand by one another,
races, overflowing with flower and fruitage, and
and never to lay down their arms till they had re¬
ramparted a-top with splintered cliffs and dark
It is some five miles long by about two in
established themselves and their brethren in those Valleys, which they believed had as really been
1 Monastier, p. 356.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
504 peaks.
It is closed at the western extremity by
part, with their over-arching branches, the bright
the naked face of a perpendicular mountain, down
sunlight.
which the Germagnasca is seen to dash in a flood of
forests of chestnut;
silver.
rock-loving birch, with its silvery stem and graceful
The meadows and woods that clothe the
bosom of the valley are seamed by a broad line of
tresses.
Higher up are fields of
maize and
and higher still is seen the
Along the splintered rocks a-top runs a f
white, formed by the torrent, the bed of which is
bristling line of firs, forming a mighty chevaux-de-
strewn with so many rocks that it looks a con¬
frise.
tinuous river of foam. Than the clothing of the mountains that form the
pendicular cliff already mentioned,
VIEW
IN
THE
VILLAGE
OF
bounding walls of this valley nothing could be finer.
Toward the head of the valley, near the vast per¬
SAN
LAURENZO,
which shuts.
ANGROGNA.
it in on the west, is seen a glorious assemblage of
On the right, as one advances up it, rises a succession
mountains.
of terraced vineyards, finely diversified with corn¬
and behind another mighty cone, till the last and
One mighty cone uplifts itself above
fields and massy knolls of rock, which rise crowned
highest buries its top in the rolling masses of cloud,
with cottages or hamlets, looking out from amid
which are seen usually hanging like a canopy above
their rich embowerings of chestnut and apple-tree.
this
Above
the grassy
four in number, rise feathery with firs, and remind
uplands, the resort of herdsmen, which in their turn
one of the fretted pinnacles of some colossal cathe¬
give place to the rocky ridges that rise in wavy
dral.
and serrated lines, and run off to the higher sum¬
of this mountain that Henri Arnaud, with his:
mits, which recede into the clouds.
patriot-warriors, pitched his camp, amid the dark
this
fruit-bearing
zone
are
On the left the mountain-wall is more steep, but equally rich in its clothing. carpeting of delicious sward.
Swathing its foot is a Trees, vast of girth,
part of the valley.
These noble
This is La Balsiglia.
aiguilles,
It was on the terraces;
tempests of winter, and the yet darker tempests of a furious and armed bigotry.
The Balsiglia shoots
its gigantic pyramids heavenward, as if proudly
505
THE CAMP OH THE BALSIGLIA. conscious of having once been the resting-place of the Vaudois ark.
It is no castle of man’s erecting;
Steep and smooth as escarped fortress, it is unscalable on every side save that on which a stream rushes
it had for its builder the Almighty Architect him¬
past from the mountains.
self.
enabled him to add to the natural strength of the
It only remains, in order to complete this pic¬
The skill of Arnaud
Vaudois position, the defences of art.
They en¬
ture of a spot so famous in the wars of conscience
closed themselves within earthen walls and ditches;
and liberty, to say that behind the Balsiglia on the
they erected covered ways; they dug out some
west rises the lofty Col du Pis.
It is rare that this
mountain permits to the spectator a view of his full
four-score cellars in the rock, to hold provisions, and they built huts as temporary barracks.
Three
THE CHURCH OF CHABAS, THE OLDEST IX THE VALLEYS.
stature, for his dark sides run up and bury them¬
springs that gushed out of the rock supplied them
selves in the clouds.
with water.
Face to face with the Col du
They constructed similar entrench¬
Pis, stands on the other side of the valley, the yet
ments on each of the three peaks that rose above
loftier Mont Guinevert, with, most commonly, a
them, so that if the first were taken they could
veil of cloud around him, as if he too were unwill¬
ascend to the second, and so on to the fourth.
ing to permit to the eye of visitor a sight of his
the loftiest summit of the Balsiglia, which com¬
stately proportions.
Thus do these two Alps, like
It was on the lower terrace of this pyramidal the Balsiglia,
that
manded the entire valley, they placed a sentinel, to watch the movements of the enemy.
twin giants, guard this famous valley. mountain,
On
Henri Arnaud—
Only three days elapsed till four battalions of the French army arrived, and enclosed the Balsiglia
his army now, alas! reduced to 400—sat down.
on every side.
Viewed from the level of the valley,
the peak
was made on the Vaudois position, which was re¬
seems to terminate in a point, but on ascend¬
pulsed with great slaughter of the enemy, and the
ing, the top expands into a level grassy plateau.
loss of not one man to the defenders.
36*
On the 29th of October, an assault
The snows
506
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
of early winter had begun to fall, and the French
made for it, it was discovered, drawn out of the
general thought it best to postpone the task of
stream, and the mill set a-working.
capturing the Balsiglia till spring.
another and more distant mill at the entrance of
the
Destroying all
There was;
corn which the Yaudois had collected and
the valley, to which the garrison had recourse when
stored in the villages, he began his retreat from
the immediate precincts of the Balsiglia were occu¬
San Martino, and, taking laconic farewell of the
pied by the enemy, and the nearer mill was nofi
Waldenses, he bade them have patience till Easter,
available.
when he would again pay them a visit.1
of brown slate may be seen by the visitor, peering
Both mills exist to this day, their roofs-
All through the winter of 1689—90, the Yau¬
up through the luxuriant foliage of the valley, the
dois remained in their mountain fortress, resting
wheel motionless, it may be, and the torrent which
after the marches, battles, and sieges of the previous
turned it shooting idly past in a volley of spray.
months, and preparing for the promised return of the French.
Where Henri Arnaud had pitched
his camp, there had he also raised his altar, and if
With the return of spring, the army of France and Piedmont reappeared.
The Balsiglia was now
completely invested, the combined force amounting
from that mountain-top was pealed forth the shout
to 22,000 in all—10,000 French and 12,000 Pied¬
of battle, from it ascended also, morning and night,
montese.
the prayer and the psalm.
celebrated De Catinat,
Besides the daily devo¬
The troops
were commanded by the lieutenant-general of the
tions, Henri Arnaud preached two sermons weekly,
armies of France.
one on Sunday and another on Thursday. At stated
looked down from their “ camp of rock” on the
times he administered the Lord’s Supper.
Nor
valley beneath them, and saw it glittering with
Foraging parties
steel by day, and shining with camp-fires by night..
was the commissariat overlooked.
The “ four hundred ” Waldenses*
brought in wine, chestnuts, apples, and other fruits,
Catinat never doubted that a single day’s fighting
which the autumn, now far advanced, had fully
would enable him to capture the place.
ripened.
victory, which he looked
A strong detachment made an incursion
into the French valleys of Pragelas and Queyras,
upon as
That the
already won,
might be duly celebrated, he ordered four hundred
and returned with salt, butter, some hundred head of
ropes to be sent along with the army, in order to
sheep, and a few oxen.
hang at once the four hundred Waldenses; and
The enemy, before depart¬
ing, had destroyed their stock of grain, and as the
he had commanded the inhabitants of Pinerolo to
fields were long since reaped, they despaired of being
prepare feux-de-joie to grace his return from the
able to repair their loss.
And yet bread to last
campaign.
The head-quarters of the French were
them all the winter through had been provided, in
at Great Passet—so called in
a way so marvellous as to convince them that He
to Little Passet,
who feeds the fowls of the air was caring for them.
valley.
Ample magazines of grain lay all around their
and is placed on an immense ledge of rock that
encampment, although unknown as yet to them.
juts out from the foot of Mont Guinevert, some
contradistinction
situated a mile lower in the
Great Passet counts some thirty roofs,,
The snow that year began to fall earlier than usual,
800 feet above the stream, and right opposite the
and it covered up the ripened corn, which the
Balsiglia.
Popish inhabitants had not time to cut when the
still to be seen the ruts worn by the cannon and
On the flanks of this rocky ledge are
approach of the Yaudois compelled them to flee.
baggage-waggons of the French army.
From this unexpected store-house the garrison drew
be no doubt that these marks are the memorials of
as they had need.
the siege, for no other wheeled vehicles ever were
Little did the Popish peasantry,
when they sowed the seed in spring, dream that Yaudois hands would reap the harvest.
There can
in these mountains.2 Having reconnoitred, Catinat ordered the assault
Corn had been provided for them, and, to Yau¬ dois eyes, provided almost as miraculously as was
(1st May, 1690).
Only on that side of Balsiglia,
where a stream trickles down from the mountains,
the manna for the Israelites, but where were they to find the means of grinding it into meal ?
At
almost the foot of the Balsiglia, on the stream of the Germagnasca, is a little mill.
The owner, M.
Tron-Poulat, three years before, when going forth into exile with his brethren, threw the mill-stone into the river; needed.”
“ for,” said he, “it may yet be
It was needed now, and search being 1 Monastier, pp. 364, 365.
2 The Author was conducted over the ground, and had all the memorials of the siege pointed out to him by two most trustworthy and intelligent guides—M. Turin, then Pastor of Macel, whose ancestors had figured in the “ Glorious Keturn; ” and the late M. Tron, Syndic of the Commune. The ancestors of M. Tron had returned with Henri Arnaud, and recovered their lands in the Yalley of San Martino, and here had the family of M. Tron lived ever since, and the precise spots where the more memo¬ rable events of the war had taken place had been handed down from father to son.
DELIVERANCE OF THE VAUDOIS.
507
and which offers a gradual slope, instead of a wall of
cannonading had ceased for the moment, but as¬
rock as everywhere else, could the attack be made
suredly the dawn would see the attack renewed.
with any chance of success.
But this point Henri
Never before had destruction-appeared to impend
Arnaud had taken care to fortify with strong pali¬
so inevitably over the Vaudois.
sades.
they were was certain death, yet whither could they
Five hundred picked men, supported by
To remain where
seven thousand musketeers, advanced to storm the
flee'?
fortress.1
of the Col du Pis, and beneath them lay the valley
They rushed forward with ardour : they
threw themselves upon the palisades;
but they
Behind them rose the unscalable precipices
swarming with foes.
If they should wait till the
found it impossible to tear them down, formed as
morning broke it would be impossible to pass the
they were of great trunks, fastened by mighty
enemy without being seen; and even now, although
boulders.
it was night, the numerous camp-fires that blazed
Massed behind the defence were the
Vaudois, the younger men loading the muskets,
beneath them made it almost as bright as day.
and the veterans taking steady aim, while the be¬
the hour of their extremity was the time of God’s
siegers were falling in dozens at every volley.
opportunity.
The
But
Often before it had been seen to be
assailants beginning to waver, the Waldensians
so, but perhaps never so strikingly as now.
made a fierce sally, sword in hand, and cut in pieces
they looked this way and that way, but could dis¬
While
Of the five
cover no escape from the net that enclosed them,
hundred picked soldiers only some score lived to
the mist began to gather on the summits of the
those whom the musket had spared.
rejoin the main body, which had been spectators
mountains around them.
from the valley of their total rout.
mantle that was wont to be cast around their
Incredible
They knew the old
as it may appear, we are nevertheless assured of it
fathers in the hour of peril.
as a fact, that not a Vaudois was killed or wounded :
yet lower on the great mountains.
not a bullet had touched one of them.
the supreme peak of the Balsiglia.
The fire¬
works which Catinat had been so provident as to
Will it mock their hopes 1
It crept lower and Now it touched
Will it only touch,
bid the men of Pinerolo get ready to celebrate his
but not cover their mountain camp 'l
victory, were not needed that night.
in motion ; downward roll its white fleecy billows,
Despairing of reducing the fortress by other
Again it is
and now it hangs in sheltering folds around the
means, the French now brought up cannon, and
war-battered fortress and its handful
it was not till the 14th of May that all was ready,
defenders.
and that the last and grand assault was made.
for still the
Across the ravine in which the conflict we have
valley.
just described took place, an immense knoll juts
The mist kept its downward course, and now all
out, at an equal level with the lower entrench¬
was dark.
ments of the Waldenses.
San Martino.
To this rock the cannons
of heroic
They dared not as yet attempt escape, watch-fires burned brightly in the
But it was only for a few minutes longer. A Tartarean gloom filled the gorge of
Never
At this moment, as the garrison stood mute, pon¬
before had the sound of artillery shaken the rocks
dering whereunto these things would grow, Captain
were hoisted up to play upon the fortress.2 of San Martino.
It was the morning of Whit-
Poulat, a native of these parts, broke silence.
He
Sunday, and the Waldenses were preparing to cele¬
bade them be of good courage, for he knew the
brate the Lord’s Supper, when the first boom from
paths, and would conduct them past the French
the enemy’s battery broke upon their ear.3
All day
and Piedmontese lines, by a track known only to
the cannonading continued, and its dreadful noises,
himself.
re-echoed from rock to rock, and rolled upwards to
and passing close to the French sentinels, yet hid¬
the summits of the
Col du Pis and the Mont
Crawling on their
hands
and knees,
den from them by the mist, they descended frightful
Guinevert, were still further heightened by the
precipices, and made their escape.
thousands of musketeers who were stationed all
not seen such paths,” says Arnaud in his Rentree
“ He who has
When night closed in the
Glorieuse, u cannot conceive the danger of them,
ramparts of the Waldenses were in ruins, and it
and will be inclined to consider my account of the
was seen that it would not be possible longer to
march a mere fiction.
maintain the defence.
The
I must add, the place is so frightful that even some
1 Monastier, pp. 369, 370. 2 Cannon-balls are occasionally picked np in the neigh¬ bourhood of the Balsiglia. In 1857 the Author was shown one in the Presbytere of Pomaretto, which had been dug up a little before. 3 Monastier, p. 371.
they saw by daylight the nature of the spot they
round the Balsiglia.
What was to be done ?
But it is strictly true; and
of the Vaudois themselves were terror-struck when had passed in the dark.”
When the day broke,
every eye in the plain below was turned to the Balsiglia.
That day the four hundred ropes which
Catinat had brought with him were to be put in
508
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
requisition,
and
the feux-de-joie
so
pared were to be lighted at Pinerolo.
long
pre¬
What was
Amadeus to
say to which side he would join
himself—the Leaguers or Louis XIV.
He re¬
their amazement to find the Balsiglia abandoned !
solved to break with Louis and take part with
The Vaudois had escaped and were gone, and might
the coalition.
be seen upon the distant mountains, climbing the
well commit the keys of the Alps as to his trusty
snows, far out of the reach of their would-be captors.
Vaudois'?
Well might they sing—
the Pra del Tor.
“ Our soul is escaped as a bird out of the snare, of the fowlers. The snare is broken, and we are escaped.”
In this case, to whom could he so
Hence the overture that met them in Ever ready to rally round the
throne of their prince the moment the hand of persecution was withdrawn, the Vaudois closed with the peace offered them.
There followed several days, during which they
Their towns and lands
were restored: their churches were reopened for
wandered from hill to hill, or lay hid in woods,
Protestant worship : their brethren still in prison
suffering great privations, and encountering nume¬
at Turin were liberated, and the colonists of their
rous perils.
At last they succeeded in reaching the
countrymen in Germany had passports to return
To their amazement and joy, on
to their homes; and thus, after a dreary interval
Pra del Tor.
arriving at this celebrated and hallowed spot, they
of three and a half years, the Valleys were again
found deputies from their prince, the Duke of
peopled with their
Savoy, waiting them with an overture of peace.
with their ancient songs.
The Vaudois were as men that dreamed.
An over¬
period of their history, which, in respect of the
A coalition, in¬
wonders, we might say the miracles that attended
ture of peace !
How was this %
cluding Germany,
Great
Britain,
Holland,
and
race, and resounded So closed that famous
it, we can compare only to the march of the chosen
Spain, had been formed to check the ambition of
people
France, and three days had
Promise.
been given Victor
ancient
through the wilderness to the
Land of
CHAPTER XVI. CONDITION OF THE WALDENSES FROM 1690.
Annoyances—-Burdens—Foreign Contributions—French Revolution—Spiritual Revivals—Felix Neff—Dr. Gilly—* General Beckwith—Oppressed Condition previous to 1840—Edict of Carlo Alberto—Freedom of Conscience— The Vaudois Church, the Door by which Religious Liberty Entered Italy—Their Lamp Kindled at Rome. With this second planting of the Vaudois in their
enemy of the Pope.1
Valleys, the period of their great persecutions may
was tolerable compared with the frightful tempests
be said to have come to an end.
which had darkened their sky in previous eras.
Their security
was not complete, nor their measure of liberty entire.
They were still subject to petty oppres¬
sions;
enemies were never wanting to whisper
Nevertheless, their condition
The Waldenses had everything to begin anew. Their numbers were thinned;
they were bowed
down by poverty; but they had vast recuperative
things to their prejudice ; little parties of Jesuits
power;
would from time to time appear in their Valleys,
many hastened to aid them in reorganising their
and their brethren in England and Ger¬
the forerunners, as they commonly found them, of
Church, and bringing once more into play that
some new and hostile edict; they lived in continual
whole civil and ecclesiastical economy which the
apprehension of having the few privileges which had
“ exile ” had so rudely broken in pieces.
been conceded to them swept away; and on one oc¬
III. of England incorporated a Vaudois regiment
casion they were actually threatened with a second
at his own expense, which he placed at the service
expatriation.
of the duke, and to this regiment it was mainly
They knew, moreover, that Rome,
William
the real author of all their calamities and woes, still meditated their extermination, and that she had entered a formal protest against their re-habilitation, and given the duke distinctly to understand that to be the friend of the Vaudois was to be the
1 Monastier, p. 389. The Pope, Innocent XII., declared (19th August, 1694) the edict of the duke re-establishing the Vaudois null and void, and enjoined his inquisitors to pay no attention to it in their pursuit of the heretics.
GILLY AND BECKWITH. owing that the duke was not utterly overwhelmed
event.
in his wars with his former ally, Louis XIY.
languished.
At
one point of the campaign, when hard pressed,
509
The spiritual condition of the Vaudois The
astounding changes.
year
1789
brought
with
it
The French Revolution rung
Victor Amadeus had to sue for the protection of
out the knell of the old times,
the Vaudois, on almost the very spot where the
amidst
deputies of Gianavello had sued to him for peace,
nations, and laid thrones and altars prostrate, a
but had sued in vain.
new political age.
In
1692
there were twelve
churches in the
those
and introduced,
earthquake-shocks
that
convulsed
The Vaudois once again passed
under the dominion of France.
There followed an
Valleys; but the people were unable to maintain a
enlargement of their civil rights, and an ameliora¬
pastor to each.
They were ground down by mili¬
tion of their social condition ; but, unhappily, with
tary imposts.
Moreover, a peremptory demand
the friendship of France came the poison of its
was made upon them for payment of the arrears of
literature, and Voltairianism threatened to inflict
taxes which had accrued in respect of their lands
more deadly injury on the Church of the Alps than
during the three
years
they had
been absent,
all the persecutions of the previous centuries.
At
and when to them there was neither seed-time
the Restoration the Waldenses were given back to
nor harvest.
their former sovereign, and with their return to the
Anything more extortionate could Mary of
House of Savoy they returned to their ancient
consort of William III., granted
restrictions, though the hand of bloody persecution
not be imagined. England, the
In their extremity,
them a “ Boyal Subsidy,” to provide pastors and schoolmasters, and this grant was increased with the increased number of parishes, till it reached the annual sum
of £550.
made in Great
A
collection
Britain at a
which was
subsequent
period
(1770) permitted an augmentation of the salaries of the pastors.
This latter fund bore the name of
could no more be stretched out. The time was now drawing
near when this
venerable people was to obtain a final emancipation. That great deliverance rose on them, as day rises on the earth, by slow stages.
The visit paid them
by the apostolic Felix Neff, in 1808, was the first dawning of their new day.
With him a breath
the “ National Subsidy,” to distinguish it from the
from heaven, it was felt, had passed over the dry
former, the “ Royal Subsidy.”
bones.
The States-General
of Holland followed in the wake of the English
The next stage in their resurrection was
the visit of Dr. William Stephen Gilly, in 1828.
collections for salaries to
He cherished, he tells us, the conviction that “ this
schoolmasters, gratuities to superannuated pastors,
is the spot from which it is likely that the great
sovereign,
and
made
Nor must
Sower will again cast his seed, when it shall please
we omit to state that the Protestant cantons of
him to permit the pure Church of Christ to resume
and for the founding of a Latin school.
Switzerland appropriated bursaries to students from
her seat in those Italian States from which Ponti¬
the Valleys at their academies—one at Basle, five
fical intrigues have dislodged her.”2
at Lausanne, and two at Geneva.1
of Dr. Gilly’s visit was the erection of a college
The result
The policy of the Court of Turin towards the
at La Torre, for the instruction of youth and the
Waldenses changed with the shiftings in the great
training of ministers, and an hospital for the sick;
current of European politics.
At one unfavour¬
able moment, when the influence of the Vatican
besides awakening great interest on their behalf in England.3
was in the ascendant, Henri Arnaud, who had so
After Dr. Gilly there stood up another to be¬
gloriously led back the Israel of the Alps to their
friend the Waldenses, and prepare them for their
ancient inheritance, was banished from the Valleys,
coming day of deliverance.
along with others, his companions in
patriotism
Beckwith is invested with a romance not unlike
England, through
that which belongs to the life of Ignatius Loyola.
and virtue, as now in exile.
The career of General
William, sought to draw the hero to her own shore,
Beckwith was a young soldier, and as brave, and
but Arnaud retired to Schoenberg, where he spent
chivalrous,
his last years in the humble, and most affectionate
He had passed unhurt through battle and siege.
discharge of the duties of a pastor among his
He fought at Waterloo till the enemy was in full
and
ambitious
of
glory as
Loyola.
expatriated countrymen, whose steps he guided to the heavenly abodes, as he had done those of their brethren to their earthly land.
He died in 1721,
at the age of four-score years. The century passed without any very noticeable 1 Mas ton, pp. 220, 221.
Monastier, pp. 388, 380.
2 Waldensian Researches, by William Stephen Gilly, M.A., Prebendary of Durham; p. 158; Lond., 1831. 3 So deep was the previous ignorance respecting this people, that Sharon Turner, speaking of the Waldenses in his History of England, placed them on the shores of the Lake Leman, confounding the Valleys of thO Vaudois with the Canton de Vaud.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
510
retreat, and the sun was going down.
But a flying
specially inculcated upon them that the field was
soldier discharged his musket at a venture, and the
wider than their Yalleys; and that they would
leg of the young officer was hopelessly shattered by
one day be called to arise and to walk through
the bullet.
Italy, in the length of it and in the breadth of
Beckwith, like Loyola, passed months
upon a bed of pain, during which he drew forth
it.
from his portmanteau his neglected
and when he had obtained for them the posses¬
began to read and study it.
Bible, and
He had lain down,
He was their advocate at the Court of Turin;
sion of a burying-ground outside their Yalleys, he
like Loyola, a knight of the sword, and like him he
exclaimed,
rose up a knight of the Cross, but in a truer sense.
Piedmont, as the patriarchs did of Canaan, and
One day in
1827 he paid a visit to Apsley
“ Now
they have
got infeftment of
soon all the land will be theirs.”1
THE TOMB OF GENERAL BECKWITH.
House, and while he waited for the duke, he took up a volume which was lying on the table.
But despite the efforts of Gilly and Beckwith,
It
and the growing spirit of toleration, the Waldenses
was Dr. Gilly’s narrative of his visit to the Wal-
continued to groan under a load of political and
denses.
Beckwith felt himself drawn irresistibly
to a people with whose wonderful history this book made him acquainted for the first time.
He
lived among them as a father—as a king.
He
devoted his fortune to them.
He built schools,
and churches, and parsonages.
He provided im¬
proved school-books, and suggested better modes of teaching.
He strove above all things to quicken He taught them how to re¬
spond to the exigencies of modern times.
They were still a proscribed
From
that hour his life was consecrated to them.
their spiritual life.
social disabilities. race.
He
1 The Author may be permitted to bear his personal testimony to the labours of General Beckwith for the Waldenses, and through them for the evangelisation of Italy. On occasion of his first visit to the Yalleys in 1851, he passed a week mostly in the society of the general, and had the detail from his own lips of the methods he was pursuing for the elevation of the Church of the Yaudois. All through the Yalleys he was revered as a father. His common appellation among them was The Benefactor of the Yaudois.’"
VINDICATION AND VICTORY. The once goodly limits of their Valleys had, in
511
fearful persecutions now began to be seen.
The
later times, been greatly contracted, and like the
Waldensian Church became the door by which
iron cell in the story, their territory was almost
freedom of conscience entered Italy.
yearly tightening its circle round them.
They
hour came for framing a new constitution for Pied¬
■could not own, or even farm, a foot-breadth of
mont, it was found desirable to give standing-room
When the
land, or practise any industry, beyond their own
in that constitution to the Waldenses, and this
boundary.
They could not bury their dead save
necessitated the introduction into the edict of the
in their Valleys ; and when it chanced that any of
great principle of freedom of worship as a right.
their
people died
at Turin or elsewhere, their
The Waldenses had contended for that principle
corpses had to be carried all the way to their own
for ages—they had maintained and vindicated it
graveyards.
They were not permitted to erect a
by their sufferings and martyrdoms; and therefore
tombstone above their dead, or even to enclose
they were necessitated to demand, and the Pied¬
their burial-grounds with a wall.
montese Government to grant, this great principle.
They were shut
out from all the learned and liberal professions—
It was the only one of the many new constitu¬
they could not be bankers, physicians, or lawyers.
tions
No avocation was left them but that of tending
which freedom of conscience was enacted.
their herds and pruning their vines.
When any
would it have found a place in the Piedmontese
of them emigrated to Turin, or other Piedmontese
constitution, but for the circumstance that here
framed for
Italy at that
same
time
in Nor
town, they were not permitted to be anything but
were the Waldenses, and that their great distinc¬
domestic servants.
tive principle demanded legal recognition, otherwise
There was no printing-press in
their Valleys—they were forbidden to have one;
they would remain outside the constitution.
and the few books they possessed, mostly Bibles,
Vaudois alone had fought the battle, but all their
The
catechisms, and hymn-books, were printed abroad,
countrymen shared with them the fruits of the
chiefly in Great Britain; and when they arrived at
great victory.
La Torre, the Moderator had to sign before the
Carlo Alberto reached La Torre there were greet¬
Reviser-in-Chief an engagement that not one of
ings on the streets, psalms in the churches, and
these books should
blazing bonfires at night on the crest of the snowy
be sold, or even lent, to a
Roman Catholic.1
Alps.
They were forbidden to evangelise or make con¬ verts.
When the news of the Statuto of
But though fettered on the one side they
41
At the door of her Valleys, with lamp in hand, its oil unspent and its light unextinguished,
is
were not equally jDrotected on the other, for the
seen,
priests had full liberty to enter their Valleys and
Alps, prepared to obey the summons of her hea¬
proselytise ; and if a boy of twelve or a girl of ten
venly King,
professed their willingness to enter the Roman
and whirlwind, casting down the thrones that of
Church, they were to be taken from their parents,
old oppressed her, and opening the doors of her
that they might with the more freedom carry out
ancient prison.
their intention.
They could not marry save among
“ The Light of all Italy,”2 as Dr. Gilly, twenty
their own people. They could not erect a sanctuary
years before, had foretold she would at no distant
save on • the soil of their own territory.
They
at the era of
day become.
1848,
the
Church
of
the
who has passed by in earthquake
She is now to go forth and be
Happily not all Italy as yet, but
could take no degree at any of the colleges of
only Piedmont, was opened to her.
Piedmont.
herself with zeal to the work of erecting churches
In short, the duties, rights, and privi¬
leges that constitute life they were denied.
They
and forming
congregations
She addressed
in Turin and other
were reduced as nearly as was practicable to simple
towns of Piedmont.
existence, with this one great exception—which
gelistic work, the Vaudois Church had time and
Long a stranger to evan¬
was granted them not as a right, but as a favour—
opportunity thus given her to acquire the mental
namely, the liberty of Protestant worship within
courage and practical habits needed in the novel
their territorial limits. The
Revolution of
circumstances in which she was now placed. 1848,
with trumpet-peal,
She
prepared evangelists, collected funds, organised col¬
sounded the overthrow of all these restrictions.
leges and congregations, and in various other ways
They fell in one day.
perfected her machinery in anticipation of the wider
The final end of Providence
in preserving that people during long centuries of
field that Providence was about to open to her. It is now the year 1859, and the drama which
1 General Beckwith: his Life and Labours, &c. By J. P. Meille, Pastor of the Waldensian Church at Turin. Page 26. Lond., 1873.
had stood still since 1849 begins once more to 2 ff Totius Italise lumen/*
512
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
advance. In that year France declared war against the Austrian occupation of the Italian peninsula. The tempest of battle passes from the banks of the Po to those of the Adige, along the plain of Lom¬ bardy, rapid, terrible, and decisive as the thunder¬ cloud of the Alps, and the Tedesclii retreat before the victorious, arms of the French. The blood of the three great battles of the campaign was scarcely dry before Austrian Lombardy, Modena, Parma, Tuscany, and part of the Pontifical States had annexed themselves to Piedmont, and their inhabi¬ tants had become fellow-citizens of the Waldenses. With scarcely a pause there followed the brilliant campaign of Garibaldi in Sicily and Naples, and these rich and ample territories were also added to the kingdom of the patriotic Victor Em¬ manuel. We now behold the whole of Italy— with the Eternal City of the Seven Hills once again its capital — comprehended in the King¬ dom of Piedmont, and brought under the operation of that constitution which contained in its bosom the beneficent principle of freedom of conscience. The whole of Italy, from the Alps to Etna, now
became the field of the Waldensian Church. Nor was this the end of the drama. Another ten years pass away : France again sends forth her armies to battle, believing that she can command victory as aforetime. The result of the brief but terrible campaign of 1870, in which the French Empire disappeared and the German uprose, was the opening of the gates of Rome. And let us mark—for in the little incident we hear the voice of ten centuries —in the first rank of the soldiers whose cannon had burst open the old gates, there enters a Vaudois colporteur with a bundle of Bibles. The Waldenses now kindle their lamp at Rome, and the purpose of the ages stands revealed ! Who can fail to see in this drama, advancing so regularly and majestically, that it is the Divine Mind that arranges, and the Divine Hand that executes !l Before this Power it becomes us to bow down, giving thanks that he does his will, nor once turns aside for the errors of those that would aid or the strivings of those that would oppose his plan; and, by steps unfathomably Avise and sublimely grand, carries onward to their full accomplishment his infinitely beneficent purposes.
38oofe JrimitefntJ). PROTESTANTISM IN FRANCE FROM DEATH OF FRANCIS I. (1547) TO EDICT OF NANTES (1598).
CHAPTER I. HENRY II. AND PARTIES IN FRANCE.
Francis I-—His Last Illness Waldensian Settlement in Provence—Fertility and Beauty—Massacre—Remorse of the King—His Death—Lying in State—Henry II.—Parties at Court—The Constable de Montmorency—The Guises—Diana of Poictiers—Marshal de St. Andre—Catherine de Medici. We have rapidly traced the line of Waldensian
story from those early ages when the assembled barbes are seen keeping watch around their lamp in the Pra del Tor, with the silent silvery peaks looking down upon them, to those recent days when the Vaudois carried that lamp to Rome and set it in the city of Pius IX. Our desire to pursue their conflicts and martyrdoms till their grand issues to Italy and the world had been reached has carried us into modern times. We shall return, and place ourselves once more in the age of Francis I. ,
We resume our history at the death-bed of that monarch. Francis died March 31st, 1547, at the age of fifty-two, “ of that shameful distemper,” says the Abbe Millot, “ which is brought on by debauchery, and which had been imported, with the gold of America.”1 The character of this sovereign was adorned by some fine qualities, but his reign was disgraced by many great errors. It is impossible to withhold from him the praise of
1 Millot, Elements of History, vol. iv., p; 317; liond.j 1779.
LAST ILLNESS OF FRANCIS L
513
a generous disposition, a cultivated taste, and a
cleared the land of rocks, they sowed it with wheat,
chivalrous bearing; but it is equally impossible to
they planted it with the vine, and soon there was
vindicate him from the charge of rashness in his
seen a smiling garden, where before a desert of
enterprises, negligence in his affairs, fickleness in
swamps, and great stones, and wild herbage had
his
He
spread out its neglected bosom to be baked by the
lavished his patronage upon the scholars of the
summer’s sun, and frozen by the. winter’s winds.
conduct,
and excess
in his
pleasures.
Renaissance, but he had nothing but stakes where¬
“ An estate which before their establishment hardly
with to reward
paid four crowns as rental, now produced from
the
disciples of Protestantism.
He built Fontainebleau, and began the Louvre.
three to four hundred.”2
And now, after all his great projects for adorning
tions of these settlers flourished here during a
The successive genera¬
his court with learned men, embellishing his capital
period of three hundred years, protected by their
with gorgeous fabrics, and strengthening his throne
landlords, whose revenues they had prodigiously
by political. alliances, there remains to him only
enriched, loved by their neighbours, and loyal to
“ darkness and the worm.”
their king.
Let us enter the royal closet, and mark the
When the Reformation arose, this people sent
setting of that sun which had shed such a brilliance
delegates—as we have
during his course.
book—to visit the Churches of Switzerland and
Around the bed upon which
related in the
previous
Francis I. lies dying is gathered a clamorous crowd
Germany, and ascertain how far they agreed with,
of priests, courtiers, and courtesans,1 who watch
and now far they differed from, themselves.
his last moments with decent but impatient respect,
report brought back by the delegates satisfied them
The
ready, the instant he has breathed his last, to turn
that the Yaudois faith and the Protestant doctrine
round and bow the knee to the rising sun.
Let us
were the same ; that both had been drawn from
press through the throng and observe the monarch.
the one infallible fountain of truth; and that, in
His face is haggard.
short, the
were suffering in soul.
He groans deeply, as if he His starts are sudden and
Protestants
were Yaudois,
Yaudois were Protestants.
and
This was enough.
the The
There flits at times across his face a dark
priests, who so anxiously guarded their territory
shadow, as if some horrible sight, afflicting him
against the entrance of Lutheranism, saw with
violent.
with unutterable woe, were disclosed to him; and
astonishment and indignation a powerful body of
a quick tremor at these moments runs through all
Protestants already in possession.
his frame.
that
He calls his attendants about him and,
the heresy
should
be
They resolved
swept from off the
mustering all the strength left him, he protests that
soil of France as speedily as it had arisen.
it is not he who is to blame, inasmuch as his orders
the 18th of November, 1540, the Parliament oi
were exceeded.
Aix passed an arret to the "following effect:—
What orderswe ask; and what
On
deed is it, the memory of which so burdens and
(< Seventeen inhabitants of Merindol shall be Jjurnt
terrifies the dying monarch J
to death” (they were all the heads of families in
We must leave the couch of Francis while we
that place); “ their wives, children, relatives, and
narrate one of the greatest of the crimes that
families shall be brought totrial, and if they can¬
blackened his reign.
not be laid hold on, they, shall be banished the
The scene of the tragedy
which projected such dismal shadows around the
kingdom for life.
death-bed of the king was laid in Provence.
In
burned and razed to the ground, the woods cut
ancient times Provence was comparatively a desert.
down, the fruit-trees torn up, and the place ren¬
Its somewhat infertile soil was but thinly peopled,
dered uninhabitable, so that none may be built
and but indifferently tilled and planted.
strewn all over with great boulders, as if here the
there.”3 The president
giants had warred, or some volcanic explosion had
humane man, had influence with the king to stay
rained a shower of stones upon it.
the execution of this horrible sentence.
It lay
The Yaudois
The houses in Merindol shall be
of
the
Parliament of
Aix,
a
Rut in
who inhabited the high-lying valleys of the Pied¬
1545 he was succeeded by Baron d’Oppede, a cruel,
montese Alps,
this more
intolerant, bloodthirsty man, and entirely at the
happily situated region, and began to desire it as
devotion of Cardinal Tournon—a man, says Abbe
a
cham¬
Millot, “ of greater zeal than humanity, who prin¬
paign country, waiting for occupants; let us go over
cipally enforced the execution of this barbarous
and possess it.
arret.”4
residence.
cast their eyes Here, said
upon
they, is a fine
They crossed the mountains, they
1 Felice, History of the Protestants of France, vol. i., p. 61; Lond., 1853.
Francis I. offered them pardon if within
2 Felice, vol. i., p. 45. 3 Ibid., vol. i, p. 44. 4 Millot, vol. iv., pp. 317, 318.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
514 three months they
should
enter the pale of the
his ministers and
courtiers no word of comfort
They disdained to buy their lives
wherewith to assuage his terrors, and fortify him
by apostacy ; and now the sword, which had hung
in the prospect of that awful Bar to which he is
for five years above their heads, fell with crushing
hastening with the passing hours'?
force.
him to sanction the crime, but they leave him to
Roman Church.
A Romanist pen shall tell the sequel :—
“ Twenty-two towns
or
villages
were
burned
or sacked, with an inhumanity of which the history
bear the burden of it alone.
They urged
He summons his son,
who is so soon to mount his throne, to his bedside,
of the most barbarous people hardly presents ex¬
and charges him with his last breath to execute
amples.
vengeance
The
unfortunate
inhabitants, surprised*
on those who
had shed this blood.2
during the night, and pursued from rock to rock by
With this slight reparation the unhappy king goes
the light of the fires which consumed their dwell¬
his dark
ings, frequently escaped one snare only to fall into
Provence behind him, the
another; the pitiful cries of the old men, the women,
before him.
road, the smoking and blood-sprinkled great
Judgment-seat
and the children, far from softening the hearts
,
of the soldiers, mad with rage like their leaders,
preparatory to his being laid in the royal vaults at
only
set them
on
following the fugitives,
and
Having breathed his last, the king lay in state,
St. Denis.
Two of his sons who had pre-deceased
pointed out the places whither to direct their fury.
him—Francis and Charles—were kept unburied
Yoluntary surrender did not exempt the men from
till now, and their corpses
execution, nor the women from excesses of bru¬
their father to the grave.
tality which made Nature blush.
in-state, the following very curious account is given
It was forbidden,
under pain of death, to afford them any refuge.
accompanied that of Of the king’s lving-
us by Sleidan :—
At Cabrieres, one of the principal towns of that
“For some days his effigies, in most rich apparel,
canton, they murdered more than seven hundred
with his crown, sceptre, and other regal ornaments,
men in cold blood; and the women, who had re¬
lay upon a bed of state, and at certain hours dinner
mained in their houses, were shut up in a barn
and supper were served up before it, with the very
filled with straw, to which they set fire ;
those
same solemnity as was commonly performed when
who attempted to escape by the window
were
he was alive.
driven back by swords and pikes.
Finally, accord¬
When the regal ornaments were
taken off, they clothed the effigies in mourning; and
ing to the tenor of the sentence, the houses were
eight-and-forty
razed, the woods cut down, the fruit-trees pulled up,;
present, who
and in a short time this country, so fertile and so
for the soul departed. About the corpse were placed
populous, became uncultivated and uninhabited.”4
fourteen great wax tapers, and over against it two
Thus did the red sword and the blazing torch purge Provence.
We cast our eyes over the puri¬
Mendicant
friars
were
always
continually sung masses and dirges
altars, on which
from daylight to noon
masses
were said, besides what were said in an adjoining
fied land, but, alas ! we are unable to recognise it.
chapel, also full of tapers and other lights.
Is this the land which but a few days ago was
and-twenty monks, with wax tapers in their hands,
Four-
golden with the yellow grain, and purple with
were ranked about the hearse wherein the corpse
the blushing grape ; at whose cottage doors played
was carried, and before it marched fifty poor men
happy children;
in mourning, every one with a taper in his hand.
mountain-sides,
and from whose meadows and borne
on
the
breeze, came the
bleating of flocks and the lowing of herds 1 alas!
its
bosom
is
scarred
and
Now,
blackened
by
Amongst other nobles, there were eleven cardinals present.” Henry II. now mounted the throne of France.
smouldering ruins, its mountain torrents are tinged
At
with blood, and its sky is thick with the black
promise a continuance of that prosperity and splen¬
smoke of its burning woods and cities.
dour which had signalised the reign of his father.
We return to the closet of the dying monarch.
The
the
moment of his accession all seemed
to
kingdom enjoyed peace, the finances were
Francis is still protesting that the deed is not his,
flourishing, the army was brave and well-affected to
and that too zealous executioners exceeded
the throne ; and all men accepted these as auguries
orders.
his
Nevertheless he cannot banish, we say not
of a prosperous reign.
This, however, was but a
from his memory, but from his very sight, the
brief gleam before the black night.
awful tragedy enacted on the plains of Provence.
missed the true path.
France had
Shrieks of horror, wailings of woe, and cries for help seem to resound through his chamber.
Have
1 Abbe Anquetil, Histoire de France, Tom. iii., pp. 246-* 249; Paris, 1835.
2 Sleidan, bk. xix., p. 429. Beza, Hist. Eccles. des Eglises Reformees du Royaume de France, livr. i., p. 30; Lille, 1841. Laval, Hist, of the Reformation in France, vol. i., bk. i., p. 55; Lond., 1737.
515
MONTMORENCY AND THE GUISES. Henry Lad worn the
crown for only a short
Constable was beyond measure devout, as became the
while when the clouds began to gather, and that
first Christian in France.
night to descend which is only now beginning to
forbidden days;
pass away from France.
evening fall but his beads were duly told.
initiated
His father had
early
him into the secrets of governing, but
Never did he eat flesh on
and never did morning dawn or It is true
he sometimes stopped suddenly in the middle of his
The young king sighed
chaplet to issue orders to his servants to hang up
to get away from the council-chamber to the gay
this or the other Huguenot, or to set fire to the
Henry loved not business.
mailed and plumed warriors
corn-field or plantation of some neighbour of his
pursued, amid applauding spectators, the mimic game
who was his enemy; but that was the work of a
of war.
minute only, and
tournament,
where
What good would this princedom do him
the Constable was back again
if it brought him not pleasure ]
At his court there
with freshened zeal to his Pater-nosters and his Ave-
lacked
and
Marias.
not persons, ambitious
supple, who
It
became
a proverb, says
Brantome,
studied to flatter his vanity and gratify his humours.
“ God keep us from the Constable’s beads.”3
To lead the king was to govern France,
to
singularities by no means lessened his reputation
govern France was to grasp boundless riches and
for piety, for the age hardly placed acts of religion
vast power.
and acts of mercy in the same category.
and
It was under this feeble king that
These
Austere,
those factions arose, whose strivings so powerfully
sagacious, and resolute, he constrained the awe if
influenced the fate of Protestantism in that great
not the love of the king, and as a consequence his
kingdom, and opened the door for so many calami¬
heavy hand was felt in every part of the kingdom.
ties to the nation.
Four parties were now formed
The second party was that of the Guises.
The
at court, and we must pause here to describe them,
dominancy of that family in France marks one of
otherwise much that is to follow would be scarcely
the darkest eras of the nation.
intelligible.
raine, from which the Lords of Guise are descended,
In the passions and ambitions of these
The House of Lor¬
parties, we unveil the springs of those civil wars
derived its original from Godfrey Bullen, King of
which for more than a century deluged France with
Jerusalem, and on the mother’s side from a daughter
blood.
of Charlemagne.
At the head of the first party was Anne de Montmorency, High Constable of France.
Claiming
Anthony, flourishing in wealth
and powerful in possessions, was Duke of Lorraine ; Claude, a younger brother, crossed the frontier in
descent from a family which had been one of the
1513, staff in hand, attended by but one servant,
first to be
to seek his fortunes in France.
baptised into the Christian faith, he
He ultimately
assumed the glorious title of the First Christian
became Duke of Guise.
and Premier Baron1 of France.
all of whom wealth seemed to come at their wish.
He possessed great
This man had six sons, to
strength of will, and whatever end he proposed to
Francis L, perceiving the ambition of these men,
himself he pursued, without much caring whom he
warned his son to keep them at a distance.4
trod down in his way to it.
He had the misfortune
the young king, despising the warning, recalled
on one occasion to give advice to Francis I. which
Francis de Lorraine as he had done the Constable
But
did not prosper, and this, together with his head¬
Montmorency, and the power of the Guises con¬
strongness, made that monarch in his latter days
tinued to grow, till at last they became the scourge
banish him from the court.
of the country in which they
When Francis was
had firmly rooted
dying he summoned his son Henry to his bedside,
themselves, and the terror of the throne which they
and earnestly counselled him never to recall Mont¬
aspired to mount.
morency, fearing that the obstinacy and pride which
The two brothers, Francis and Charles, Stood at
even he had with difficulty repressed, the weaker
the head of the family, and figured at the court.
hands to which he was now bequeathing his crown2
Francis, now in the flower of his age, was sprightly
would be unequal to the task of curbing.
and daring; Charles was crafty, but timid; Laval
No
sooner
had
Henry assumed the
reins of
government than he recalled the Constable.
Mont¬
morency^ recall did not help to make him a meeker man.
He strode back to court with brow more
says of him that he was “the cowardliest of all men.”
The qualities common to both brothers,
and possessed by each in inordinate degree, were cruelty and ambition.
Rivals they never could
elate, and an air more befitting one who had come
become, for though their ambitions were the same,
to possess a throne than to serve before it.
their spheres lay apart, Francis having chosen the
The
profession of arms, and Charles the Church. 1 Davila, Historia delle Guerre Civili di Francia, livr. i., p. 9; Lyons, 1641. Maimbourg, Hist. du Calvinisme, livr. ii., p. 118 j Paris, 1682. 2 Davila, p. 14.
3 Laval, vol. i., pp. 70, 71. 4 Thaunus, Hist., lib. iii. Laval, vol. i., p< 71.
This
DIANA OF POICTIEBS. division of pursuits doubled their strength,
for
her, save by ascribing it to the philtres which she
what the craft of the one plotted, the sword of the
made him drink.
other executed.
They were
517
A more likely cause was her
the
acknowledged
brilliant wit. and sprightly manners, added to her
heads of the Homan Catholic party.
“ But for the
beauty, once dazzling, and not yet wholly faded.
Guises,” says Mezeray, “the new religion would
But her greed was enormous.
perhaps have become dominant in France.”
her as the cause of the taxes that were grinding
The people cursed
HENRY II. OF FRANCE. {From the Portrait in P. G.J. NieVs
“ Portraits des Personnages Franqais les plus illustres du XVP Siecle”)
The third party at the court of France was that of
Diana of
Poictiers.
This woman
was
them into poverty ; the nobility hated her for her
the
insulting airs; but access there was none to the
daughter of John of Poictiers, Lord of St. Yalier,
king, save through the good graces of Diana of
and had been the wife of the Seneschal of Nor¬
Poictiers, whom the king created Duchess of Yalen-
mandy.
tinois.
She was twenty years older than the
king, but this disparity of age did not hinder her from becoming mistress of his heart.
The popu¬
lace could not account for the king’s affection for
The title by embellishing made only the
more conspicuous the infamy of her relation to the man who had bestowed it.
The Constable on
the one side, and the Guises on the other, sought
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
518
to buttress tbeir own power by paying court to Diana.1
not even to herself; but when her husband died,
To such a woman the holy doctrines of
and the mistress no longer divided with the wife
Protestantism could not be other than offensive;
the ascendency over the royal mind, then the hour
in truth, she very thoroughly hated all of the
of revelation came, and it was seen what consum¬
religion,
mate guile, what lust of power, what love of blood
and much of the righteous blood shed
in the reign of Henry II.
is to be laid at the
and revenge had slumbered in her dark Italian
door of the lewd,
and cruel
soul.
greedy,
Diana of
Poictiers.
As one after another of her imbecile sons—-
each more imbecile than he who had preceded him
The fourth and least powerful faction was that of the Marshal de St. Andre.
He was as brave and
—mounted the throne, the mother stood up in a lofty and yet loftier measure of truculence and am¬
valiant as he was witty and polite; but he was
bition.
drowned in debt.
Though a soldier he raised him¬
party of her own, but to maintain the poise among
self not by his valour, but by court intrigues;
the other factions, that by weakening all of them
“ under a specious pretence for the king’s service
she might strengthen herself.
he
hid a boundless
ambition,
and
an
unruly
As yet, however, her cue was not to form a
Such were the parties that divided the court of
avarice,” said his Romanist friends, “and was more
Henry II.
eager after the forfeited estates than after the over¬
one man of real honour and sterling patriotism in
throw of the rebels and Huguenots.”2
whom to confide.
Neither
Thrice miserable monarch!
without
And not less miserable courtiers!
court nor country was likely to be quiet in which
They make a brave show, no doubt, living in gilded
such a man figured.
saloons, wearing sumptuous raiment, and feasting
To these four parties we may add a fifth, that of Catherine de Medici, the wife of Henry. passions but
Of deeper
greater self-control than many of
at luxuriant tables, but their hearts all the while are torn with envy, or tortured with fear, lest this gay life of theirs should come to a sudden end by
those around her, Catherine meanwhile was “ biding
the stiletto or the poison-cup.
her time.”
says an old historian, “crept ipto France under this
There were powers in this woman
which had not yet disclosed themselves, perhaps
“ Two great sins,”
prince’s reign—atheism and magic.”
CHAPTER II. HENRY II.
AND HIS PERSECUTIONS.
Bigotry of Henry II.—Persecution—The Tailor and Diana of Poictiers—The Tailor Burned—The King Witnesses his Execution—Horror of the King—Martyrdoms—Progress of the Truth—Bishop of Magon—The Gag—First Pro¬ testant Congregation—Attempt to Introduce the Inquisition—National Disasters—Princes and Nobles become Protestants—A Mercuriale—Arrest of Du Bourg—A Tournament—The King Killed—Strange Kumours. Henry
II. walked in the
ways
of his
father,
Francis, who first made France to sin by beginning a policy of persecution.
To the force of paternal
example was added, in the case of Henry,
the
influence of the maxims continually poured into his
to uphold the old religion.
To cut off its enemies
was the most acceptable atonement a prince could make to Heaven. wonder
that
the
With such schooling, is it any deplorable
work
of burning
heretics, begun by Francis, went on under Henry;
ear by Montmorency, Guise, and Diana of Poictiers.
and that the more the king multiplied his pro¬
These councillors inspired him with a terror of Pro¬
fligacies, the greater his zeal in kindling the fires
testantism as pre-eminently the enemy of monarchs
by which he thought he was making atonement for
and the source of all disorders in States ; and they
them
assured him that should the Huguenots prevail they
The historians of the time record a sad story,
would trample his throne into the dust, and lay
which unhappily is not a solitary instance of the
France at the feet of atheists and revolutionists.
bigotry of the age, and the vengeance that was
The first and most sacred of duties, they said, w^as
beginning
1 Davila, lib. i., pp. 13,14.
2 Laval, vol. i., p. 73.
to
animate France
against
3 Laval, vol. i., p. 73.
all
who
519
THE KING AND THE TAILOR It affectingly displays
parties had now taken their places, the tailor burning
the heartless frivolity and wanton cruelty—two
at the stake, the king reposing luxuriously at the
favoured Protestantism.
qualities never far apart—which characterised the
window, and Diana of Poictiers seated in haughty
French
triumph by his side.
court.
The
coronation
of
the queen,
The martyr looked up to the
Catherine de Medici, was approaching, and Henry,
window where the king was seated, and fixed his
who did his part so ill as a husband
eye on Henry.
in other
From the midst of the flames that
respects, resolved to acquit himself with credit in
eye looked forth with calm steady gaze upon the
this.
king.
He wished to make the coronation fetes of
more than ordinary splendour;
and in order to
The eye of the monarch quailed before that
of the burning man.
this he resolved to introduce what would form a new feature in these rejoicings, and give variety
stake.
and piquancy to them, namely, the burning piles of
martyr; his limbs were dropping off, his face was
four Huguenots.
Four victims were selected, and
growing fearfully livid, but his eye, unchanged,,
one of these was a poor tailor, who, besides having
was still looking at the king ; and the king felt as
eaten flesh on a day On which its use was forbidden,
if, with Medusa-power, it was changing him into
had given other proofs of being not strictly orthodox.
stone. The execution was at an end : not so the terror
He was to form, of course, one of the coronation torches; but to burn him was
not enough.
It
but again
his
He turned away to avoid
it,
glance wandered back to the
The flames were still blazing around the
of the king.
The tragedy of the day was reacted
occurred to the Cardinal of Lorraine that a little
in the dreams of the night.
amusement might be extracted from the man.
The
rose before Henry in his sleep.
cardinal pictured to himself the contusion
that
blazing pile, there was the martyr burning in the
would overwhelm the poor tailor, were he to be
fire, and there was the eye looking forth upon him
interrogated before the king, and how mightily the
from the midst of the flames.
court would be diverted by the incoherence of his
sive nights was the king scared by this terrible
replies.
vision.
He was summoned before Henry, but the
The terrible apparition There again was the
For several succes¬
He resolved, nay, he even took an oath,
matter turned out not altogether as the Church¬
that never again would he be witness to the burn¬
man had reckoned it would.
ing of a heretic.
The promise was ful¬
It had been still better had he
filled to the confessor, “ When ye shall be brought
given orders that never again should these horrible
before
executions be renewed.
kings
and rulers for my sake and the
Gospel’s, it shall be given you in that hour what ye shall speak.”
So far from being abashed, the tailor
So far, however, was the persecution from being relaxed, that its rigour was greatly increased.
Piles
maintained perfect composure in the royal presence,
were erected at Orleans, at Poictiers, at Bordeaux^
and replied so pertinently to all interrogatories and
at Nantes—in short, in all the chief cities of the
objections put by the Bishop of Magon, that it was
kingdom.
the king and the courtiers who were disconcerted.
far from arresting the progress of the Reformed
These cruel proceedings, however, so
Diana of Poictiers—whose wit was still fresh, if her
opinions, only served to increase the number of
beauty had faded—stepped boldly forward, in the
their professors.
hope of rescuing the courtiers from their embarrass¬
dignity in the Church, now began, despite the dis¬
ment ; but, as old Crespin says, “ the tailor cut her
favour in which all of the 66 religion ” were held at
doth otherwise than she expected; for he, not being
court, to enrol themselves in the Protestant army.
able to endure such unmeasured arrogance in her
But the Gospel in France was destined to owe
whom he knew to be the cause of these cruel per¬
more to men of humble faith than to the possessors
secutions, said to her, ‘ Be satisfied, Madam, with
of rank,
having
Chatelain, Bishop of Magon, who disputed with the
infected France, without mingling your
Men of rank in the State, and of
however lofty.
We
have mentioned
venom and filth in a matter altogether holy and
poor tailor before Henry II.
sacred, as is the religion and truth of our Lord
one thing only did he lack, even grace, to make
Jesus Christ.’”1
him one of the most brilliant characters and most
The king took the words as an
A s Beza remarks,,
affront, and ordered the man to be reserved for the
illustrious professors of
stake.
Lowly born, Chatelain had raised himself by nis
When the day of execution came (14th
the Gospel
in
July, 1549), the king bade a window overlooking
great talents and beautiful
the pile be prepared, that thence he might see the
daily at the table of Francis I., among the scholars
man, who
and wise men whom the king loved to hear dis¬
favourite,
had
had the audacity to insult his
slowly consuming in the fires. 1 Beza, tom. i., livr. ii., p. 50.
Both
course.
character.
France. He sat
To the accomplishments of foreign travel
2 Beza, tom. i., livr. ii., p. 51.
.Laval, vol. i., p. 76.
£20
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
lie added tlie charms of an elegant latinity. favoured the new opinions,
and
He
displeasure by forbidding his subjects to send money
undertook the
to Rome, and by protesting against the Council of
defence of Robert Stephens, the king’s printer,
Trent, the Fathers having returned for the second
when the Sorbonne attacked him for his version of
time to that town.
the Bible.1
the king and the Pope only tended to quicken the
These acquirements and gifts procured
his being made Bishop of Magon.
But the mitre
flames of persecution.
But this contention between Henry wished to make it
would seem to have cooled his zeal for the Reforma¬
clear to his subjects that it was against the Pope
tion, and in the reign of Henry II. we find him
in his temporal and not in his spiritual character
persecuting the faith he had once defended.
Soon
that he had girded on the sword; that if he was
after his encounter with the tailor he was promoted
warring against the Prince of the Roman States,
to the See of Orleans, and he set out to take posses¬
his zeal had not cooled for the Holy See; and that
sion of his new bishopric.
if Julius the monarch was wicked, and might be
Arriving at a monastery
in the neighbourhood of Orleans, he halted there,
resisted, Julius the Pope was none the less entitled
intending to make his entry into the city on the
to the obedience of all Christians.4
The Fathers persuaded him to preach;
To teach the Protestants, as Maimbourg observes,
and, as Beza remarks, to see a bishop in a pulpit
morrow.
that they must not take advantage of these quarrels
was so great a wonder in those days, that the sight
to vent their heresies, there was published at this
attracted an immense crowd.
As the bishop was
time (27th June) the famous Edict of Chateau¬
thundering against heretics, he was struck with a
briand, so called from the place where it was given.
sudden and violent illness, and had to be carried
By this law, all former severities were re-enacted;
out of the pulpit.
He died the following night.2
the cognisance of the crime of heresy was given to
At the very gates of his episcopal city, on the very
the secular power; informers were rewarded with
steps of his episcopal throne, he encountered sudden-
the fourth part of the forfeited goods; the pos¬
arrest, and gave up the ghost.
sessions and estates of all those who had fled to
Five days thereafter (9th July, 1550), Paris was lighted up with numerous piles.
Geneva were confiscated to the king; and no one
Of these martyrs,
was to hold any office under the crown, or teach
who laid gloriously with their blood the foundations
any science, who could not produce a certificate of
of the French Protestant Church, we must not omit
being a good Romanist.5
the names of Leonard Galimar, of Yenddme, and
times been pursued by the monarchs of France
Florent Yenot, of Sedan.
The latter endured in¬
This policy has at all
when they quarrelled with the Pope.
It behoved
credible torments, for no less a period than four
them, they felt, all the more that they had incurred
years, in the successive prisons into which he was
suspicion, to vindicate the purity of their orthodoxy,
thrown.
and their claim to the proud title of “ the Eldest
His sufferings culminated when he was
brought to Paris.
He was there kept for six weeks
Son of the Church.”
in a hole where he could neither lie, nor stand
Maurice, Elector of Saxony, was at this time pro¬
upright, nor move about, and the odour of which
secuting his victorious campaign against Charles Y.
was beyond measure foul and poisonous, being filled
The relations which the King of France had con¬
with all manner of abominable filth.
tracted with the Protestant princes,
His keepers
and which
said that they had never known any one inhabit
enabled him to make an expedition into Lorraine,
that dreadful place for more than fifteen days,
and to annex Metz and other cities to his crown,
without losing either life or reason.
moderated for a short while the rigours of perse¬
But Yenot
surmounted all these sufferings with a most ad¬
cution.
mirable courage.
ratified the liberties of the Protestants of Germany,
Being burned alive in the Place
But the Peace of Passau (1552), which
Maubert, he ceased not at the stake to sing and
rekindled the fires in France.
magnify the Saviour, till his tongue was cut out,
more measures to observe with the
and even then he continued to testify his joy by
princes,” says Laval, “ nothing was to be seen in
signs.3
“ Henry having no Protestant
his kingdom but fires kindled throughout all the
In the following year (1551) a quarrel broke out between Henry and Pope Jidius III., the cause
provinces against the poor Reformed.”6
Yast num¬
bers were executed in this and the following year.
being those fruitful sources of strife, the Duchies
It was now that the gag was brought into use for
of Parma and
the first time.
Placentia.
The king showed his
1 Laval, vcl. i., p. 78. 2 Beza, tom. i., pp. 51, 52. 3 Ibid., tom. i., p. 52.
It had been invented on purpose to
4 Maimbourg, Hist. Calv., livr. ii., p. 94; Paris, 1682. 5 Ibid., livr. ii., pp. 94, 95. Laval, vol. i., p. 80. 6 Laval, vol. i., p. 81.
FORMATION OF PROTESTANT CONGREGATIONS.
521
prevent the martyrs addressing the people at the
power to administer the Sacraments.
stake, or singing psalms to solace themselves when
last prevailed upon, and, after prayer and fasting,
on their way to the pile.
their choice fell on Jean Ma9on de la Riviere.
44 The first who suffered
it,” says Laval, 44 was Nicholas Noil, a book-hawker,
They were at He
was the son of the king’s attorney at Angers, a rich
who was executed at Paris in the most barbarous
man, but a bitter enemy of Protestantism.
He
manner.”1
was so offended at his son
the
The scene of martyrdom was in those days at times the scene of conversion. ing incident is a proof.
Of this, the follow¬
Simon Laloe, of Soisson,
was offering up his life at Dijon.
As he stood at
for embracing
Reformed faith, that he would have given him up to the judges, had he not fled to Paris.
The sacri¬
fice which M. de la Riviere had made to preserve the purity of his conscience, fixed the eyes of the
the stake, and while the faggots were being kindled,
little flock upon him.
he delivered an earnest prayer for the conversion
pastor of the Reformed Church of France,4 elected
of his persecutors.
The executioner, Jacques Syl¬
forty years after Lefevre had first opened the door
vester, was so affected that his tears never ceased
for the entrance of the Protestant doctrines. 44 They
to flow all the time he was doing his office.
In him we behold the first
He had
chose likewise,” says Laval, speaking of this little
heard no one before speak of God, or of the Gospel,
flock, 44 some amongst them to be elders and dea¬
but he could not rest till he was instructed in the
cons,
Scriptures.
government of their Church as the times would
Having received the truth, he retired
and made such other regulations for the
to Geneva, where he died a member of the Reformed
allow.
Church.2
Church of Paris in the month of September, 1555,
The same stake that gave death to the
Such were the first beginnings of the
which increased daily during the war of Henry II.
one, gave life to the other. The insatiable avarice of Diana of Poictiers, to
with Charles V.”5
whom the king had gifted the forfeited estates of
If France blazed with funeral piles, it was day
the Reformed, not less than zeal for Romanism,
by day more widely illuminated with the splendour
occasioned every day new executions. continued
notwithstanding
to
The truth
spread.
44 When
of trurh.
This gave infinite vexation and torment
to the friends of Rome, who wearied themselves to
the plague,” says Maimbourg,44 attacks a great city,
devise new methods for arresting the progress of
it matters little what effort is made to arrest it.
the Gospel.
enters every door;
It
Loud accusations and reproaches passed
it traverses every street; it
between the courts of jurisdiction for not showing
invades every quarter, and pursues its course till
greater zeal in executing the edicts against heresy.
the whole community have been enveloped in its
The cognisance of that crime was committed some¬
ravages : so did this dangerous sect spread through
times to the royal and sometimes to the ecclesiastical
France.
judges, and sometimes parted between them.
Every day it made new progress, despite
The
the edicts with which it was assailed, and the
mutual recriminations still continued.
dreadful executions to which so many of its mem¬
above all crimes, it was said, was leniently treated
bers were consigned.”3 persecution that
the
Reformed Church in
It was in the midst of this first congregations France were
of the
settled
with
A crime
by those whose duty it was to pursue it without mercy.
At last, in the hope of attaining the re¬
quisite vigour, the Cardinal of Lorraine stripped the
pastors, and began to be governed by a regular
Parliament and the civil judges of the right of
discipline.
hearing such causes,
The first Church to be thus constituted was in
and
transferred it to the
bishops, leaving nothing to the others but the mere
Paris; 44 where,” says Laval, 44 the fires never went
execution of the sentence against the condemned.
out.”
At that time the disciples of the Gospel
This arrangement the cardinal thought to perfect
were wont to meet in the house of M. de la Ferriere,
by establishing the Inquisition in France on the
a wealthy gentleman of Maine, who had come to
Spanish model.
reside in the capital.
succeed, the Parliament having refused its consent
M. de la Ferriere had a child
whom he wished to have baptised, and as he could not present him to the priests for that purpose, nor
In this,
however,
he
did not
thereto.6 The calamities that befel the kingdom were a
undertake a journey to Geneva, he urged the Chris¬
cover to the evangelisation.
tians, who were wont to assemble in his house, to
on a truce with the Emperor Charles for five years.
elect one of themselves to the office of pastor, with
It did not, however, suit the Pope that the truce
1 Laval, vol. i., p. 82. Beza, tom. i., p. 59. 2 Beza, tom. i., p. 59. s Maimbourg, livr. ii.3 p. 95.
Henry II. had agreed
4 Beza, tom. i., pp. 62—64. 5 Lavat vol. i., pp. 83, 84.
c Beza, tom. i.„ p. 72.
Laval, vol. i., pp. 85, SfV
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
522 should be kept.
Paul IY. sent his legate to France
throw his throne, root out his house, and bring his
to dispense Henry from his oath, and induce him
kingdom to ruin.
to violate the peace.
Heaven, evoked by that impious sect, be read in the
The flames of war were re¬
kindled, but the French arms were disgraced.
The
battle of St. Quentin was a fatal blow to France,
many dark calamities that were gathering round France h
and the Duke of Guise was recalled from Italy to retrieve it.
He recovered in the Low Countries
the reputation which he had lost in Sicily
but
Might not the displeasure of
It was resolved that a “ Mercuriale,” as it is called in France, should be held, and that the king, with¬ out giving previous notice of his coming, should
even this tended in the issue to the weakening of
present himself in the assembly.
France.
see and hear for himself, and judge if there were
The duke’s influence at court was now
He would thus
predominant, and the intrigues which his great
not, even among his senators, men who favoured
rival, Montmorency, set on foot to supplant him,
this pestilent heresy.
led to the Treaty of Cateau Cambresis (1559), by
the times of Charles VIII. (1493), when corruption
which France lost 198 strongholds,1 2 besides the
crept into the administration, and the State was in
It had been a custom from
deepening of the jealousies and rivalships between
danger of receiving damage, that representatives of
the House of Lorraine and that of the Constable,
all the principal courts of the realm should meet,
which so nearly proved the ruin of France.
in order to inquire into the evil, and admonish
main inducement with
One
Henry to conclude this
treaty with Philip of Spain, was that it left him
one another to greater vigilance.
Francis I. had
ordered that these “ Censures ” should take place
free to prosecute the design formed by the Cardinal
once every three months, and from the day on
of Lorraine and the Bishop of Arras for the utter
which they were held—namely, Wednesday (Dies
extirpation of the Reformed.
Mercurii)—they were named “ Mercuriales. ”4
In fact, the treaty
^contained a secret clause binding both monarchs to
On the 10th of June, 1559, the court met in the
combine their power for the utter extirpation of
house of the Austin Friars, the Parliament Hall
heresy in their dominions.
not being available, owing to the preparations for
But despite the growing rigour of the persecu¬
the wedding of the king’s daughter and sister.
tion, the shameful slanders which were propagated
The
against the Reformed, and the hideous deaths in¬
attended by the princes
king
suddenly
appeared
in
the
assembly,
of the blood, the Con¬
flicted on persons of all ages and both sexes, the
stable, and the Guises.
numbers of the Protestants and their courage daily
on the throne, he delivered a discourse on reli¬
increased.
gion ;
It was now seen that scarcely was
Having taken his seat
he enlarged on his own labours for the
there a class of French society which did not fur¬
peace of Christendom,
nish converts to the Gospel.
seal by giving in marriage his daughter Elizabeth
Mezeray says that
which
he was about to
.there was no town, no province, no trade in the
to
kingdom wherein the new opinions had not taken
garet to Philibert Emmanuel, Duke of Savoy ; and
root.
The lawyers, the learned, nay, the eccle¬
siastics, against their own interest, embraced them.3
he
Philip
of
concluded
Spain, by
and
his
only sister
announcing his resolution to
devote himself henceforward to the healing of the
Some of the greatest nobles of France now rallied
wounds of the Christian world.
round the Protestant standard.
the senators to go on with their votes.
Among these was
Mar¬
He then ordered
Antoine de Bourbon, Duke of Vendome, and first
Though all felt that the king was present to
prince of the blood, and Louis de Bourbon, Prince
overawe them in the expression of their sentiments,
of Conde, his brother.
With these were joined
many of the senators declared themselves with that
two nephews of the Constable Montmorency, the
ancient liberty which became their rank and office.
Admiral
They pointed to the fact that a Council was at that
Gaspard de
Coligny,
and his brother,
Frangois de Chatillon, better known as the Sire
moment convened at Trent to pronounce on the
d’Andelot.
faith, and that it was unjust to burn men for heresy
A little longer and all France would
be Lutheran.
the
before the Council had decreed what was heresy.
alarm of all about him was not less so, and all
The king’s alarm was great :
Arnold du Ferrier freely admitted that the troubles
united in urging upon him the adoption of yet
of France sprang out of its religious differences,
more summary measures against an execrable belief,
but then they ought to inquire who was the real
which, if not rooted out, would most surely over¬
author of these differences, lest, while pursuing the sectaries, they should
1 Davila, Hist, delle Guerre Civili cli Francia, lib. i., p. 13. 3 Laval, vol. i., p. 107. 3 Mezeray. Abr. Ohr., tom.iv.,p. 720. Laval, vol. i., p. 107.
expose themselves
to
the
rebuke, “ Thou art the man that troubles Israel.’' 4 Laval, vol. i., pp. 109,110.
HISTOBY OF PBOTESTANTISM.
524
Annas du Bourg, who next rose, came yet closer
1559,
to the point.
There were, he said, many great
gathered in the Faubourg St. Antoine, to see the
and
the
rank and beauty of
Paris are
crimes and wicked actions, such as oaths, adul¬
king tilting with selected champions in the lists.
teries, and perjuries, condemned by the laws, and
The king bore himself “ like a sturdy and skilful
deserving of the severest punishment, which went
cavalier ” in the mimic war.
without correction, while new punishments were
arms was over, the plaudits of the brilliant throng
every
had saluted the royal victor, and every one thought
day
invented
for
men
who
been found guilty of no crime.
as yet had
Should those be
held guilty of high treason who mentioned the
The last passage-ah
that the spectacle was at an end.
But no; it was
to close with a catastrophe of which no one present
name of the prince only to pray for him ? and
so much as dreamed.
should the rack and the stake be reserved, not for
the king yet farther to display his prowess before
A sudden resolve seizing
those who raised tumults in the cities, and seditions
the admiring multitude, he bade the Count Mont¬
in the provinces,
gomery, the captain of his guard, make ready and
but for those who were the
brightest patterns of obedience to the laws, and
run a tilt with him.
the firmest defenders of order?
self, but the king insisted.
It was a very
Montgomery excused him¬ Mounting his horse
grave matter, he added, to condemn to the flames
and placing his lance in rest, Montgomery stood
men who died calling on the name of the Lord
facing the king.
Jesus.
warriors, urging their steeds to a gallop, rushed
Other speakers followed in the same strain.
Hot so the majority, however.
They recalled the
at
each other:
The trumpet sounded. Montgomery’s
lance
The two
struck the
examples of old days, when the Albigensian heretics
king with such force that the staff was shivered.
had been slaughtered in thousands by Innocent
The blow made Henry’s visor fly open, and a
III. ; and when the Waldenses, in later times, had
splinter from the broken beam entered his left eye
been choked with smoke in their own dwellings,
and drove into his brain.
and the dens of the mountains ; and they urged
horse to the ground.
the instant adoption of these time-honoured usages.
through the spectators.
When the opinions
been
but he was mortally wounded, and the death-blow
marked, the king took possession of the register in
had been dealt by the same hand—that of the
of
the senators
had
The king fell from his A thrill of horror ran
Was the king slain ?
Ho ;
which the votes were recorded, then rising up, he
captain of his guard—which he had employed to
sharply chid those members who had avowed a
arrest the martyr Du Bourg.
oreference for a moderate policy; and, to show that
the Hotel de Tournelles, where he died on the 10 th
under a despot no one could honestly differ from
of July, in the forty-first year of his age.2 Many strange things were talked of at the time,
the royal opinion and be held guiltless, he ordered the Constable to arrest Du Bourg.
The captain
He was carried to
and have been related by contemporary historians,
of the king’s guard instantly seized the obnoxious
in connection with the death of Henry II.
senator, and carried him to the Bastile.
Other
queen, Catherine de Medici, had a dream the night
members of Parliament were arrested next day at
before, in which she saw him tilting in the tourna¬
their own houses.1
ment, and so hard
The king’s resolution was fully taken to execute all the senators who
had
opposed him, and to
His
put to, that in the morning
when she awoke she earnestly begged him that day not to stir abroad;
but, says Beza, he no more
exterminate Lutheranism everywhere throughout
heeded the warning than Julius Csesar did that of
France. He would begin with Du Bourg, who, shut
his wife, who implored him on the morning of the
up in an iron cage in the Bastile, waited his doom.
day on which he was slain not to go to the Senate-
But before the day of Du Bourg’s execution arrived,
house.
Henry himself had gone to his account.
We have
same palace which had been decked out with so much
already mentioned the delight the king took in
magnificence for the two marriages was that in
jousts and tournaments.
He was giving his eldest
Nor did it escape observation that the
which the king breathed his last, and so u the hall
daughter in marriage to the mightiest prince of
of
his time—Philip II. of Spain—and so great an
mourning.” And, finally, it was thought not a little
occasion he must needs celebrate with fetes of cor¬
remarkable
responding
which Henry was to lie in state, and the royal
magnificence.
Fourteen days have
triumph was
changed
into the chamber of
that when the bed was prepared on
elapsed since his memorable visit to his Parlia¬
corpse laid upon it, the attendants, not thinking of
ment, and now Henry presents himself in a very
the matter at all, covered it with a rich piece of
different assemblage.
tapestry on which was represented the conversion
It is the last day of June,
1 Beza, tom. i., pp. 122,123.
2 Davila^ lib. i., pp. 17,18.
Laval, vol. i., p. 142.
THE COLPORTEURS IN FRANCE.
525
of St. Paul, with the words in large letters, “ Saul,
taken away, and replaced with another piece.1
Saul, why persecutest thou me 1 ” This was remarked
incident recalled the last words of Julian, who fell
upon by so many who saw it, that the officer who
like Henry, warring against Christ: “ Thou hast
had charge of the body ordered the coverlet to be
overcome. O Galilean ! ”
CHAPTER
The
III.
FIRST NATIONAL SYNOD OF THE FRENCH PROTESTANT CHURCH.
Early Assemblies of French Protestants—Colportage—Holy Lives—The Planting of Churches throughout France —Play at La Rochelle—First National Synod—Confession of Faith of the French Church—Constitution and Government—Gradation of Courts—Order and Liberty—Piety Flourishes. The young vine which had been planted in France,
secret doors, so that, entering by different ways,
and which was beginning to cover with its shadow
their assembling might attract no notice.
the plains of that fair land, was at this moment
their enemies should break in upon them, they took
And lest
sorely shaken by the tempests; but the fiercer the
the precaution of bringing cards and dice with them,
blasts that warred around it, the deeper did it
to throw upon the table in the room of their Bibles
strike its roots in the soil, and the higher did it
and psalters, as a make-believe that they had. been
lift its head into the heavens.
interrupted at play, and were a band of gamblers
There were few
districts or cities in France in which there was not to be found a little community of disciples.
instead of a congregation of Lutherans.2 In the times we speak of, France was traversed by
These flocks had neither shepherd to care for them,
an army of book-hawkers.
nor church in which to celebrate their worship.
Geneva, Lausanne, and Neuchatel supplied Bibles
The printing-presses of
The violence of the times taught them to shun ob¬
and religious books in abundance, and students of
servation ;
nevertheless, they neglected no means
theology, and sometimes even ministers, assuming
of keeping alive the Divine life in their souls,
the humble office of colporteurs carried them into
and increasing their knowledge of the Word of
France.
God.
back, they pursued their way, summer and winter,
They assembled at stated times, to read to¬
Staff in hand, and pack slung on their
gether the Scriptures, and to join in prayer, and at
by highways and cross-roads, through forests and
these gatherings the more intelligent or the more
over marshes, knocking from door to door, often
courageous of their number expounded a passage
repulsed, always hazarding their lives, and at times
from the Bible, or delivered a word of exhortation.
discovered,
These teachers, however,
means the Bible gained admission into the mansions
confined themselves to
and dragged to the pile.
By their
They did not dispense the Sacraments,
of the nobles, and the cottages of the peasantry.
for Calvin, who was consulted on the point, gave it
They employed the same methods as the ancient
doctrine.
as his opinion that, services of
till they had obtained the
a regularly ordained ministry, they
should forego celebrating the Lord’s Supper.
They
Yaudois colporteur to conceal their calling.
Their
precious wares they deposited at the bottom of their baskets, so that one meeting them in city alley, or
were little careful touching the fashion of the place
country highway,
in which they offered their united prayer and sang
vendors of silks and jewellery—a deception for
would
have
taken
them
for
It might be a garret, or a cellar, or
which Florimond de Rmmond rebukes them, with-
It might be a cave of the mountains, or a
out, however, having a word in condemnation of
glen in the far wilderness, or some glade shaded
the violence that rendered the concealment neces¬
their psalm. a barn.
by the ancient trees of the forest.
Assemble where
sary.
The success of these humble and devoted
they might, they knew that there was One ever in
evangelists was attested by the numbers whom they
the midst of them, and where he was, there was the
prepared for the stake, and who, in their turn,
Church.
One of their number gave notice to the
rest of the time and place of meeting.
If in a city,
they took care that the house should have several
1 Beza, tom. i., p. 124. 2 Flor. de Raemond, Hist, de laNaissance, S(cdc V Here sic de ce Siecle, lib. vii., p. 931.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
526
sowed in their blood the seed of new confessors and
demned out of their own mouths.
martyrs.
that they “killed the innocent.”
They confess
At times, too, though owing to the fewness of
Truly wonderful was the number of Protestant
pastors it was only at considerable intervals, these
congregations already formed in France at the time
little assemblies of believing men and women had
of the death of Henry II.
the much-prized pleasure of being visited by a
consumed,” the Reformed Church was even green
minister of the Gospel.
and flourishing,
From him they learned
“ Burning,” yet “ not
because refreshed with a secret*
how it was going with their brethren in other parts
dew, which was more efficacious to
of France.
life than all the fury of the flames to extinguish
Their hearts swelled and their eyes
preserve its
brightened as he told them that, despite the fires
it.
everywhere burning, new converts were daily press¬
the Church in Paris, in 1555.
ing forward to enrol themselves in the army of
that and the five following years by so many others
Christ,
in all parts of France, that we can do little save
and that the soldiers of the Cross were
We have already recorded the organisation of It was followed in
multiplying faster than the stake was thinning them.
recite the names of these Churches.
Then covering the table, and placing upon it the
martyrdoms through which each struggled
“bread” and “cup,” he would dispense the Lord’s
existence, before taking its place on the soil of
The perils and into
Supper, and bind them anew by that holy pledge to
France, we cannot recount.
the service of their heavenly King, even unto the
Meaux, trodden into the dust years before, now
death.
rose from its ruins.
Thus the hours would wear away, till the
The early Church of
In 1546 it had seen fourteen
morning was on the point of breaking, and they
of its members burned; in 1555 it obtained a settled
would take farewell of each other as men who
pastor.2
would meet no more till, by way of the halter or
formed, and placed under the care of a pastor from
the stake, they should reassemble in heaven.
Geneva.
At Angers
(1555) a congregation was
At Poictiers, to which so great an interest
The Singular beauty of the lives of these men
belongs as the flock which Calvin gathered together,
attracted the notice, and extorted even the praise,
and to whom he dispensed, for the first time in
of their bitterest enemies. France.
It was a new thing in
Florimond de Rsemond, ever on the watch
France, the
Sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, a
congregation was regularly organised (1555).
It
for their halting, could find nothing of which to
happened that the plague came to Poictiers, and
accuse them save that “instead of dances and May-
drove from the city the bitterest enemies of the
poles they set on foot Bible-readings, and the sing¬
Reformation; whereupon its friends, taking heart,
ing of spiritual hymns, especially the psalms after
formed themselves into a Church, which soon be¬
they had been turned into rhyme.
The women, by
came so flourishing that it supplied pastors to the
their deportment and modest apparel, appeared in
congregations that by-and-by sprang up in the neigh¬
public like sorrowing Eves, or penitent Magdalenes,
bourhood.3
as Tertullian said of the Christian women of his
of Saintonge, a great number of the inhabitants
day.
received the truth, and were formed into a congrega
The men too, with their mortified air, seemed
to be overpowered by the Holy Ghost.”1
It does
At Ale vert, an island lying off the coast
tion in 1556.
At Agen, in Guienne, a congregation
not seem to have occurred to the monkish chronicler
was the same year organised, of which Pierre David,
to inquire why it was that what he considered an
a converted monk, became pastor.
evil tree yielded fruits like these, although a true
wards chaplain to the King of Navarre.
answer to that question would have saved France
He was after¬
At Bourges, at Aubigny, at Issoudun, at Blois,
If the facts were
at Tours, at Montoine, at Pau in Bearn, Churches
as Raemond stated them—if the confessors of an
were organised under regular pastors in the same
heretical and diabolical creed were men of pre¬
year, 1556.
eminent virtue—the
at Montauban and Angouleme.4
from many crimes and woes.
conclusion
was
inevitable,
either that he had entirely misjudged regarding their creed,
or that the whole moral
order of
To these are to be added the Churches
In the year following (1557), Protestant congre¬ gations were formed, and placed under pastors, at
things had somehow or other come to be reversed.
Orleans, at Sens, at Rouen in Normandy, and in
Even Catherine de Medici, in her own way, bore her
many of the towns and villages
testimony to the moral character of Protestantism.
ing Dieppe on the shores of the English Channel.
“I have a mind,” observed she one day, “to turn to
Protestantism had penetrated the mountainous re-
around, includ¬
the new religion, to pass for a prude and a pious woman.”
The persecutors of that age are con1 Flor de Raemond, lib. vii., p. 864.
2 Beza, tom. i., p. L24. 3 Laval, vol. i., p. 146. 4 Beza, tom. i., p. 135.
Beza, tom. i., p, 125.
A COMEDY AND A DIDDLE.
527
gion of the Cevennes, and left the memorials of its
It was all in vain.
triumphs amid a people proverbially primitive and
specifics gave her the least mitigation of her suffer¬
Not one of these renowned
rude, in organised Churches. In Brittany numerous
ings.
Churches arose, as also along both banks of the
last they bethought
The friars were perfectly non-plussed.
At
them of another expedient.
Garonne, in Nerac, in Bordeaux, and other towns
They put the habit of St. Francis upon her.
too
numerous to be mentioned.
thought they, as sure as St. Francis is a saint, she
the
scene
of
recent
In Provence,
slaughter,
there
existed
no fewer than sixty Churches in the year 1560.1 The
beginnings of the “ great and glorious”
is
cured.
Now,
But, alas! attired in cowl and frock,
the poor sick woman sat rocking from side to side amid the friars, still grievously tormented by the
Church of La Bochelle are obscure. So early as 1534
pain in her conscience, and bemoaning
a woman was burned in Poitou, who said she had
condition, that those people understood not how to
been instructed in the truth at La Bochelle.
From
confess her.
her sad
At that point, when priest and friar
that year we find no trace of Protestantism there
had exhausted their skill, and neither rosary nor
till 1552, when its presence there is attested by
holy habit could work a cure, one stepped upon the
the barbarous execution of two martyrs, one of
stage, and going up to the woman, whispered into
whom had his tongue cut out for having acted as
her ear that he knew a man who would confess her
the teacher of others; from which we may infer
right, and give her ease in her conscience ; but,
that there was a little company of disciples in that
added he, he goes abroad only in the night-time, for
town, though keeping themselves concealed for fear
the day-light is hurtful to him.
of the persecutor.2
earnestly begged that that man might be called to
The sick person
In 1558 the King and Queen of Navarre, on their
her. He was straightway sent for : he came in a lay-
way to Paris, visited La Bochelle, and were splen¬
dress, and drawing near the bolster, he whispered
didly entertained by the citizens.
something in the woman’s ear which the spectators
In their suite
was M. David, the ex-monk, and now Protestant
did not hear.
preacher,
change of expression, that she was well pleased with
already
referred
to.
He
proclaimed
They saw, however, by her instant
openly the pure Word of God in all the places
what had been told her.
through which the court passed, and so too did he
drew out of his pocket a small book, which he put
The mysterious man next
One day during their majesties’
into her hand, saying aloud, “ This book contains
stay at this city, the town-crier announced that a
the most infallible recipes for the curing of your
in La Bochelle.
company of comedians had just arrived, and would
disease; if you will make use of them, you will recover
act that day a new and wonderful piece.
your health perfectly in a few days.”
The
Hereupon lie
citizens crowded to the play; the king, the queen,
left the stage, and the sick woman, getting out ol
and the court being also present.
bed with cheerful air, as one perfectly cured, walked
When the curtain rose, a sick woman was seen at
three times round the stage, and then turning to
the point of death, shrieking in pain, and begging
the audience, told them that that unknown man had
The parish priest was sent for.
succeeded where friar and priest had failed, and
He arrived in breathless haste, decked out in his
that she must confess that the book he had given
canonicals.
her was full of most excellent recipes, as they them¬
to be confessed.
He began to shrive his penitent, but
to little purpose.
Tossing from side to side, ap¬
selves might see
from the happy change it had
parently in greater distress than ever, she cried out
wrought in her; and if any of them was afflicted
that she was not well confessed.
with the same disease, she would advise them to
Soon a crowd of
ecclesiastics had assembled round the sick woman,
consult that book, which she would readily lend
each more anxious than the other to give her relief.
them; and if they did not mind its being somewhat
One would have thought that in such a multitude
hot in the handling, and having about it a noisome
of physicians a cure would be found ; but no : her
smell like that of a fagot, they might rest assured it,
case baffled all their skill.
would certainly cure them.
her in hand.
The friars next took
Opening great bags which they had
brought with them, they drew forth, with solemn air, beads which they gave her to count, relics which
If the audience desired
to know her name, and the book’s name, she said, they were two riddles which they might guess at.3 The citizens of La Bochelle had no great difficulty
they applied to various parts of her person, and in¬
in reading the riddle.
dulgences which they read to her, with a perfect
of the book, despite its associations with the stake
confidence that these would work an infallible cure.
and the fagot, and they found that its efficacy was
1 Beza, tom. i., p. 108. 2 Laval, vol. i., p. 149.
Many of them made trial
3 Laval, vol. i., pp. 150—152—ex Vincent, Recherches swr les Commencemens de la Ref. d la Rochelle.
528
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
sufficiently sovereign to cure them. deliverance
They obtained
little companies
of
believing
men
and women,
from that burden on the conscience
scattered over the country, were cared for and fed
which had weighed them down in fear and anguish,
only by the Great Shepherd, who made them lie
despite all that friar or penance could do to give
down in the green pastures of his Word, and by
them ease.
the still waters of his Spirit.
From that time Protestantism flourished
But this was an in¬
in La Rochelle; a Church was formed, its members
complete and defective condition.
not daring as yet, however, to meet for worship in
are not only a “flock,” but a “kingdom,” and it is
open day, but assembling under cloud of night, as was
the peculiarity of a kingdom that it possesses “order
still the practice in almost all places in France.
and government” as well as subjects.
We are now arrived at a new and most important
HARBOUR
development of Protestantism in France.
OF
As has
Christ’s people
The former
exists for the edification and defence of the latter.
LA ROCHELLE.
In 1555 congregations began to be formed on the
been already mentioned, the crowns of France and
Genevan model.
Spain made peace between themselves, that they
and with him was associated a small body of laymen
might be at liberty to turn their arms against,
to watch over the morals of the flock.
Protestantism, and effect its extermination.
organising went on vigorously, and in 1560 from
Both
A pastor was appointed to teach,
monarchs were preparing to inflict a great blow.
one
It was at that hour that the scattered sections of
existed in France.
the
gregation come into existence.
French
Protestant
Church
drew
together,
to
two thousand
Protestant
The work of congregations
Thus did the individual con¬ But the Church of
and, rallying around a common standard, presented
God needs a wider union, and a more centralised
a united front to their enemies.
authority.
It was forty years since Lefevre had opened the door of France to the Gospel.
All these years
Scattered over the wide space that separates the Seine
from
the
Rhone
and
the
Garonne, the
there had been disciples, confessors, martyrs, but
Protestant Churches of France were isolated and
no congregations in our sense of the term.
apart.
The
In the fact that they had common interests
DIANA OP POICTIERS.
CLAUDE DE LORRAINE, DUKE OP GUISE.
CATHERINE DE MEDICI
ANNE DE MONTMORENCY.
(From the Portraits by Clouet and Th. de Leu, in the Libiiotheque Nationals, Paris.)
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
530
and common dangers, a basis was laid, they felt, for
Saintes,
confederation.
d’Angely.2
In this way would the wisdom of
Marennes,
Chatellerault,
Pastor
Francois
and
Morel,
all be available for the guidance of each, and the
Ccllonges, was chosen to preside.
strength of each be combined for the defence of all.
ties
St.
Jean
Sieur
of
Infinite difficul¬
had to be overcome, says Beza, before the
As the symbol of such a confederation it was
Churches could be advertised of the meeting, but
requisite that a creed should be drafted which all
greater risks had to be run before the deputies
might confess, and a code of discipline compiled to
could assemble : hence the fewness of their number.
which all would submit.
The gibbet was then standing in all the public places
Not to fetter the private
judgment of individual Christians, nor to restrict
of the kingdom, and had their place of meeting been
the rights of individual congregations, was this creed
discovered, without doubt, the deputies would have
framed ; on the contrary, it was intended as a shield
been led in a body to the scaffold.
of both liberty of opinion and liberty of Christian action.
But in order to effect this, it was essential
There is a simplicity
and a
moral grandeur
appertaining to this assembly that compels our
that it should be drawn from the doctrines of the
homage.
Bible and the models of apostolic times, with the
No mace or symbol of authority graces the table
No guard stands sentinel at the door.
same patient investigation, and the same accurate
round
deduction, with which men construct a science from
gathered ; no robes of office dignify their persons;
which the
deputies of the Churches are
the facts which they observe in nature, but with
on the contrary, royal edicts have proclaimed them
greater submission of mind, inasmuch as the facts
outlaws,
observed for the framing of a creed are of super¬
Nevertheless, as if they were assembled in peaceful
natural revelation, and with a more anxious vigilance
times, and under the shadow of law, they go on day
and the
persecutor is on their
track.
to avoid error where error would be so immensely
by day, with calm dignity and serene power, plant
more pernicious and destructive, and above all, with
ing the foundations of the House of God in their
a dependence on that Spirit who inspired the Word,
native land.
and who has been promised to enlighten men in the
first stones should be cemented with their blood.
true sense of it.
As God has revealed himself in his
They will do their work, although the
We can present only an outline of their great
Word, so the Church is bound to reveal the Word
work.
to the world.
hended in forty articles, and agrees in all essential
The French Protestant Church now
Their Confession of Faith was compre¬
points with the Creed of the Church of England.
discharged that duty to its nation. It was agreed between the Churches of Paris and
They received the Bible as the sole infallible rule
Poictiers, in 1558, that a National Synod should be
of faith and manners.
held for the purpose of framing a common confession
of the Trinity; of the Fall; of the entire corrup¬
They confessed the doctrine
In the following spring,
tion of man’s nature, and his condemnation ; of the
circular letters were addressed to all the Churches of
election of some to everlasting life; of the call of
and a code of discipline.
the kingdom, and they, perceiving the benefit to the
sovereign and omnipotent grace; of a free redemp¬
common cause likely to accrue from the step, readily
tion by Christ, who is our righteousness; of that
gave their consent. that the
It was unanimously agreed
Synod should
be held in
Paris.
The
righteousness as the ground of our justification; of faith, which is the gift of God, as the instrument
capital was selected, says Beza, not because any pre¬
by which we obtain an interest in that righteous¬
eminence or dignity was supposed to belong to the
ness ; of regeneration by the Spirit to a new life,
Church there, but simply because the confluence of
and to good works ; of the Divine institution of
so many ministers and elders was less likely to
the ministry; of the equality of all pastors under
attract notice in Paris than in a provincial town.1
one chief
As regards rank, the representative of the smallest
Christ; of the true Church,
Pastor
and
universal
Bishop,
Jesus
as composed of the
congregation stood on a perfect equality with the
assembly of believers, who agree to follow the rule
deputy of the metropolitan Church.
of the Word; of the two Sacraments, baptism and
The Synod met on the 25th of May, 1559.
At
the Lord’s Supper; of the policy which Christ has
that moment the Parliament was assembling for
established for the government of his Church; and of
the Mercuriale, at which the king avowed his pur¬
the obedience and homage due to rulers in monarchies
pose of pursuing the Reformed with fire and sword
and commonwealths, as God’s lieutenants whom he
till
has set to exercise a lawful and holy office.3
he
had
exterminated them.
From
eleven
Churches only came deputies to this Synod : Paris,
Their code of discipline was arranged also in
St. Lo, Diegpe, Angers, Orleans, Tours, Poictiers, 1 Beza, tom. i., p. 109.
2 Felice, vol. i., p. 70. 3 Beza, tom. i., pp. 109—118. Laval, vol. i., pp. 118—132.
THE REFORMED CHURCH OF FRANCE, forty
articles.
Dismissing details,
let us state
for its domain
531
or circle.
It was the court of
Reformed
highest judicature; it determined all great causes,
Church of France, as settled at its first National
and heard all appeals, and to its authority, in the
in
outline
Synod. been
the
constitution
of
the
Its fundamental idea was that which had taught
both at Wittemberg and Geneva,
last resort, all were subject.
It was presided over
by a pastor chosen by the members.
His pre¬
namely, that the government of the Church is dif¬
eminence was entirely official, and ended at the
fused throughout the whole body of the faithful,
moment the Synod had closed its sittings.
but that the exercise of it is to be restricted to
In the execution of their great task, these first
those to whom Christ, the fountain of that govern¬
builders of the Protestant Church in France availed
ment, has given the suitable gifts, and whom their
themselves of the counsel of Calvin.
fellow Church members have called to its discharge.
their eyes were all the while directed to a higher
On this democratic basis there rose four grades of
model than Geneva, and they took their instructions
power : — 1. The Consistory. 3. The Provincial Synod.
2. The
Colloquy.
4. The National Synod.
Nevertheless,
from a higher authority than Calvin.
They studied
the New Testament, and what they aimed at fol¬
Corresponding with these four grades of power
lowing was the pattern which they thought stood
there were four circles or' areas—the Parish, the
revealed to them there, and the use they made
District, the Province, and the Kingdom.
Each
of Calvin’s advice was simply to be able to see
grade of authority narrowed as it ascended, while
that plan more clearly, and to follow
the circle within which it was exercised widened.
closely.
it more
What had its beginning in a democracy, ended
the apostle—“ One is your Master, even Christ,
Adopting as their motto the words of
in a constitutional monarchy, and the interests of
and all
each congregation and each member of the Church
there must be government in the Church—“ One
were, in the last resort, adjudicated upon by the
is your Master”—that the source of that govern¬
wisdom and authority of all.
ment is in heaven, namely, Christ; that the revela¬
There was perfect
liberty, combined with perfect order.
ye
are
brethren ” — they inferred
that
tion of it is in the Bible, and that the depository
Let us sketch briefly the constitution of each
of it is in the Church—“All ye are brethren.”
separate court, with the sphere within which, and
Moving between the two great necessities which
the responsibilities under which, it exercised its
their motto indicated, authority and liberty, they
powers.
It bore rule
strove to adjust and reconcile these two different
over the congregation, and was composed of the
First came the Consistory.
but not antagonistic forces—Christ’s royalty and
minister, elders, and deacons.
his people’s brotherhood.
The minister might
Without the first there
be nominated by the Consistory, or by the Colloquy,
could not be order, without the second there could
or by the Provincial Synod, but he could not be
not be freedom.
ordained till he had preached three several Sundays
ceded their code of discipline; the first had been
to the congregation, and the people thus had had
accepted before the second was submitted to; thus
an opportunity of testing his gifts, and his special
all the bonds that held that spiritual society to¬
fitness to be their pastor.
gether, and all the influences that ruled it, proceeded
The elders and deacons
were elected by the congregation.
out of the throne in the midst of the Church.
The Colloquy came next, and was composed of all the congregations of the district.
Their scheme of doctrine pre¬
they,
as constituted officers,
stood
If
between the
Each congre¬
Monarch and the subjects of this spiritual empire,
gation was represented in it by one pastor and one
it was neither as legislators nor as rulers, strictly
elder or deacon.
The Colloquy met twice every
so called.
“One” only was Master, whether as
year, and settled all questions referred to it from
regarded law or government.
the congregations within its limits.
not legislative but administrative, and their rule
Next came the Provincial Synod.
It compre¬
Their power was
was not lordly but ministerial;
they were the
hended all the Colloquies of the Province, every con¬
fellow-servants
gregation sending a pastor and an elder to it.
whom, their functions were discharged.
The
of those
among whom,
and fq.
Provincial Synod met once a year, and gave judg¬
The Synod sat four days; its place of meeting was
ment in all cases of appeal from the court below,
never discovered, and its business finished, its mem
and generally in all matters deemed of too great
bers departed for their homes, which they reached
weight to be determined in the Colloquy. At the head of this gradation of ecclesiastical authority came the National Synod.
It was com¬
in safety.
Future councils have added nothing of
moment to the constitution of the French Protestant Church, as framed by this its first National Synod.2
posed of two pastors and two elders from each of the Provincial Synods, and had the whole kingdom
1 Beza, tom. i., pp. 118—121. Laval, vol. i., pp. 132—139.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
332
The times subsequent to the holding of this assembly were times of great prosperity to the Pro¬ testants of France.
The Spirit of God was largely
enemies fall under him, and submit themselves unto him. “Oh! the unparalleled success of the plain and
given them; and though the fires of persecution
earnest sermons of the first Reformers !
continued to burn,
titudes flock in like doves into the windows of
the pastors were multiplied,
Mul¬
congregations waxed numerous, and the knowledge
God’s ark.
and purity of their members kept pace with their
the womb of the morning, so hath the Lord Christ
increase.
the dew of his youth.
The following picture of the
French
As innumerable drops of dew fall from The Popish churches are
Church at this era has been drawn by Quick :—
drained, the Protestant churches are filled.
“The holy Word of God is duly, truly, and power¬
priests complain that their altars are neglected;
fully preached in churches and fields, in ships and
their masses are now indeed solitary.
houses, in vaults and cellars, in all places where the
not stand before God’s ark.
The
Dagon can¬
Children and persons
and con-
of riper years are catechised in the rudiments and
Multitudes
principles of the Christian religion, and can give a
are convinced and converted, established and edi¬
satisfactory account of their faith, a reason of the
Gospel ministers can have
admission
veniency, and with singular success. fied.
Christ rideth out upon the white horse of
hope that is in them.
By this ordinance do their
the ministry, with the sword and the bow of the
pious pastors prepare them for communion with the
Gospel preached, conquering and to conquer.
Lord at his holy table.”1
His
CHAPTER IY. A GALLERY OF PORTRAITS.
National Decadence—Francis II.—Scenes Shift at Court—The Guises and the Queen-mother—Anthony de Bourbon —His Paltry Character—Prince of Conde—His Accomplishments—Admiral Coligny—His Conversion—Embraces the Reformed Faith—His Daily Life—Great Services—Jeanne d’Albret, Queen of Navarre—Greatness of her Character—Services to French Protestantism—Her Kingdom of Navarre—Edict Establishing the Reformed Wor¬ ship in it—Her Code—Her Fame. Henry II. went to his grave amid the deepening
with bright but baleful splendour.
shadows of fast-coming calamity.
The auspicious
Montmorency had a hint given him that his health
signs which had greeted the eyes of men when he
would be benefited by the air of his country-seat.
ascended the throne had all vanished before the
The king knew not, so he said to him, how to
close of his reign, and given place to omens of evil.
reward his great merits, and recompense him for
The
the army was
the toil he had undergone in his service, save by
dispirited by repeated defeat, the court was a hot¬
relieving him of the burden of affairs, in order that
finances were
embarrassed,
The Constable
bed of intrigue, and the nation, broken into factions,
he might enjoy his age in quiet, being resolved not
was on the brink of civil war.
to wear him out as a vassal or servant, but always
So rapid had been
the decline of a kingdom which in the preceding
to honour him as a father.2
reign was the most flourishing in Christendom.
grumbling a little, strode off to his Castle of Chan¬
Henry II.
was
succeeded
on the
the eldest of his four sons, under Francis II.
The
throne
by
the title of
blood of the Yalois and the
blood of the Medici—two corrupt streams—were
The field cleared of
these parties, the contest for power henceforward lay between the Guises and the Queen-mother. Francis II. was a lad of sixteen, and when we
united on the throne of
think who had had the rearing of him, we are not
With the new monarch came a shifting of
surprised to learn that he was without principles and
now for the first time France.
tilly, ten leagues from Paris.
The proud Constable,
parties in the Louvre ; for of all slippery places in the world those near a throne are the most slippery. The star of Diana of Poictiers, as a matter of course, vanished from the firmament where it had shone
1 Synodicon in Gallia Reformata, Introduction, v., vi.; Lond., 1692. 2 Davila, Hi&t. del. Guer. Civ. Franc., p. 20.
THE RIVALS AND THEIR POLICY. without morals. a tool
Feeble in mind and body, he was
all the more fit for the hand of a bold
intriguer.
At the foot of the throne from which
533
between the leaders of the Reformed,
and the
Guises who were for striking them down without mercy.
The new relation of Catherine brings cer¬
she had just descended stood the crafty Italian
tain personages upon the stage whom we have not
woman, his mother, Catherine de Medici: might
yet met, but whom it is fitting, seeing they are to
she not hope to be the sovereign-counsellor of her
be conspicuous actors in what is to follow, we
weak-minded son 1
should now introduce.
During the lifetime of her hus¬
band, Henry II., her just influence as the wife had
The first is Anthony de Bourbon, Duke of Ven-
been baulked by the ascendency of the mistress,
dome, and first prince of the blood.
Diana of Poictiers.
parent stock sprang the two royal branches of
That rival had been swept from
From the same
her path, but another and iliore legitimate competi¬
France, the Valois and the Bourbon.
tor had come in the room of the fallen favourite.
(St. Louis) had four sons, of whom one was named
Louis IX
By the side of Francis II., on the throne of France,
Philip and another Robert.
sat Mary Stuart, the heir of the Scottish crown, and
line of the Valois, in which the succession was con¬
the niece of the Guises.
tinued for upwards of 300 years.
The king doated upon her
From Philip came the From Robert.,
beauty,1 and thus the niece was able to keep open
through his son’s marriage with the heiress of the
the door of the royal closet, and the ear of her
Duchy of Bourbon, came the house of that name,
husband, to her uncles.
This gave the Guises a
which has come to fill so large a space in history,
prodigious advantage in the game that was now
and has placed its members upon the thrones2 of
being played round the person of the king.
France, and Spain, and Naples.
when we think how truculent
they were,
And
Princes of the
and
blood, and adding to that dignity vast possessions,
how skilled they had now become in the arts by
a genius for war, and generous dispositions, the
which princes' favour is to be won, it does not
Bourbons aspired to fill the first posts in the king¬
surprise us to learn that in the end of the day they
dom.
were foremost in the race.
the reigning monarch, who found it necessary at
Catherine de Medici
Their pretensions were often troublesome to
was a match for them any day in craft and ambi¬
times to visit their haughty bearing with temporary
tion, but with the niece of her rivals by the king’s
banishment from court.
side, she found it expedient still to dissemble, and
cloud at the time when Henry II. died.
to go on a little while longer disciplining herself in
accession of Francis II. they resolved on returning
They were under this On the
those arts in which nature had fitted her to excel,
to court and resuming their old influence in the
and in which long practice would at last make
government; but to their chagrin they found those
her an expert, and then would she grasp the govern¬
places which they thought they, as princes of the
ment of Franee.
blood, should have held, already possessed by the
The question which the Queen-mother now put,
Guises.
The latter united with the Queen-mother
“ What shall be my policy ? ” was to be determined
in repelling their advances, and the Bourbons had
by the consideration of who were her rivals, and
again to retire, and to seek amid the parties of the
what the tactics to which they were committed.
country that influence which they were denied in
Her rivals, we have just said, were the Guises, the
the administration.
heads of the Roman Catholic party.
This threw
Anthony
de
Bourbon
had
married
Jeanne
She was
d’Albret, who was the most illustrious woman of
nearly as much the bigot as the Cardinal of Lorraine
her time, and one of the most illustrious women in
Catherine somewhat on the other side.
himself, but if she loved the Pope, still more did
all history.
she love power, and in order to grasp it she stooped
Valois, Queen of Navarre, whose genius she in¬
She was the daughter of Margaret of
to caress what she mortally hated, and feigned to
herited, and whom she surpassed in her gifts of
protect what she secretly wished to root out.
governing, and in her more consistent attachment
Thus
* did God divide the counsels and the arms of these
to the Reformation.
Her fine intellect, elevated
Had the
soul, and deep piety were unequally yoked with
Guises stood alone, the Reformation would have
Anthony de Bourbon, who was a man of humane
two powerful enemies of his Church.
been crushed in France; or had Catherine de Medici
dispositions, but of low tastes, indolent habits, and
stood alone, a like fate would have befallen it; but
of paltry character.
Providence brought both upon the scene together,
d’Albret brought him the title of King of Navarre ;
His marriage with Jeanne
and made their rivalry a shield over the little Pro¬
but his wife was a woman of too much sense, and
testant flock.
cherished too enlightened a regard for the welfare of
The Queen-mother now threw herself 1 Davila., p. 19.
2 Davila, pp. 7, 8.
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
534
She
battle, dragged it into their private quarrels, and
took care not to entrust him with the reins of
then when it had won for them the crown, they
government.
deserted it.”3
her subjects, to give him more than the title.
To-day, so zealous was he for the
Gospel, that he exerted himself to have the new
The next figure that comes before us is a truly
opinions preached in his wife’s dominions; and
commanding one.
to-morrow would
better known as Admiral de Coligny.
he
be
so
zealous for Rome,
It is that of Gaspard de Coligny, He towers
that he would persecute those who had embraced
above the Bourbon princes, and illustrates the fact
the opinions he had appeared, but a little before,
that greatness of soul is a much more enviable
so desirous to have propagated.
possession than mere greatness of rank.
water,” he
“ Unstable as
spent his life in travelling between
Coligny,
perhaps the greatest layman of the French Reforma¬
the two camps, the Protestant and the Popish,
tion, was descended from an ancient and honourable
unable
house, that of Chatillon.
long to adhere
despised by both.1
to
either,
and
heartily
The Romanists, knowing the
He was born in the same
year in which Luther commenced the Reforma¬
vulgar ambition that actuated him, promised him a
tion by the publication of his Theses, 1517.
territory which he might govern in his own right,
lost his father on the 24th of August, 1522, being
He
and he kept pursuing this imaginary princedom.
then only five years of age.
It was a mere lure to draw him over to their side;
was a fatal day to Coligny, for on that day, fifty
and his life endeide.
Should
Into the midst of the enemy advanced
that white plume; where raged the thickest of the
the League (March 14, 1590) on the plains of Ivry..
fight, there was it seen to wave, and thither did the
His opponents were in greatly superior numbers,
soldiers follow.
having been reinforced by Spanish auxiliaries and
hours, the day declared decisively in favour of the
Oerman reiter.
king.
Here a second great victory crowned
After a terrible combat of two
The army of the League was totally routed.
620
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
and fled from the field, leaving
its cannon and
the situation of the Protestants in these few words:
standards behind it to become the trophies of the
“ They had the halter always about their necks.”
victors.1
Stung by the temporising and heartless policy of
This victory, won over great odds, was a second
Henry, the Huguenots proposed to disown him as
lesson to Henry of the same import as the first.
their chief, and to elect another protector of their
But he was trying to profess two creeds, and “a
Churches.
double-minded man is unstable in all his ways.”
would have been ruined.
This fatal instability caused Henry to falter when
safety of the Reformed faith was the first thing.
he was on the point of winning all.
Had he
Had they abandoned him, his cause To the Protestants the
To Henry the possession of the throne was the
marched direct on Paris, the League, stunned by
first thing,
and the. Huguenots and their cause
the blow he had just dealt it, would have been
must wait.
The question was, How long h
easily crushed; the fall of the capital would [have
It was now four years since Henry after a sort
followed, and, with Paris as the seat of his govern¬
had been King of France; but the peaceful pos¬
ment,
session of the throne was becoming less likely than
his
cause
triumphant.
would
have
been
completely
He hesitated—he halted;
his en¬
ever.
Every day the difficulties around him, in¬
thusiasm seemed to have spent itself on the battle¬
stead of diminishing, were thickening.
field.
success which had formerly attended his arms ap¬
He had won a victory, but his indecision
permitted its fruits to, escape him.
All that year
peared to be deserting him.
Even the
Shorn of his locks,
was spent in small affairs—in the sieges of towns
like Samson, he was winning brilliant victories no
which contributed noi ung to his main object.
longer.
League had time to recruit itself.
The
The Duke of
Parma—the most illustrious general of the age— came to its help.
Henry’s affairs made no pro¬
gress; and thus the following year (1591) was as uselessly spent as its predecessor.
What was to be done ? this had now
come to be the question with the king.
Henry, to
use a familiar expression, was “ falling between two stools.”
The time had come for him to declare
himself, and say whether he was to be a Roman
Meanwhile, the
Catholic, or whether he was to be a Protestant.
unhappy country of France—divided into factions,
There were not wanting weighty reasons, as they
traversed by armies, devastated by battles—groaned
seemed, why the king should be the former.
under a combination of miseries.
Henry’s great
bulk of his subjects were Roman Catholics, and by
qualities remained with him; his bravery and dash
being of their religion he would conciliate the
were shown on many a bloody field;
victories
majority, put an end to the wars between the two
crowded in upon him; fame gathered round the
rival parties, and relieve the country from all its
white plume;
troubles.
nevertheless, his cause stood still.
By this step only could he ever hope to
An eclipse seemed to rest upon the king, and a
make himself King of all France.
Nemesis appeared to dog his triumphal car.
around him counsel.
With a professed Protestant upon the throne, one would have expected the condition of the Huguenots to be greatly alleviated; but it was not so. concessions
which
might
have
been
The
So did many
His recantation would, to a
large extent, be a matter of form, and by that form how many great ends of State would be served !
The
But on the other side there were sacred memories
expected
which Henry could not erase, and deep convictions
from even a Roman Catholic sovereign were with¬
which he could not smother.
held by one who was professedly a Protestant.
The
prayers of a mother, the ripened beliefs of a life¬
Huguenots as yet had no legal security for their
time, the obligations he owed to the Protestants,
civil and religious liberties.
The laws denouncing
The instructions and
all must have presented themselves in opposition to
confiscation and death for the profession of the
the step he now meditated.
Protestant religion, re-enacted by Henry III., re¬
to be profaned ? were all these hallowed bonds to
mained unrepealed, and were at times put in force
be rent asunder !l
by country magistrates and provincial Parliaments.
had he deliberated in council;
It sometimes happened that while in the camp of
shipped in the same sanctuary; how often fought
the king the Protestant worship was celebrated, a
on the same battle-field; their arms mainly it was
few leagues off the same worship was forbidden to
that raised him to the throne; was he now to for¬
Were all these pledges
With the Huguenots how often
a Huguenot congregation under severe penalties.
sake them %
The celebrated Mornay Duplessis well described
the mind of the king.
how often wor¬
Great must have been the conflict in But the fatal step had been
taken four years before, when, in the hope of dis¬ 1 It is scarcely necessary to remind onr readers that this battle formed the subject of Lord Macaulay’s wellknown ballad-song of the Huguenots.
arming the hostility of the Roman Catholic lords, he consented to receive instruction in the Romish faith.
To hesitate in a matter of this importance;
ABJURATIOH OF HEHRY IV. was to surrender—was to be lost; and the choice
621
of difficulties, fatigues, pains, perils, and labours
which Henry now made is just the choice which
You must be always in the saddle;
it was to be expected he would make.
always have the corselet on your back, the helmet
There
you must
is reason to fear that he had never felt the power of
on your head, and the sword in your hand.
the Gospel upon his heart.
what is more, farewell to repose, to pleasure, to
His hours of leisure
were often spent in adulterous pleasures.
Hay,
One of
love, to mistresses, to games, to dogs, to hawking,
his mistresses was among the chief advisers of the
to building; for you cannot come out through these
step he was now revolving. this Huguenotism do him?
What good would
affairs but by a multitude of combats, taking of
Would he be so great
cities, great victories, a great shedding of blood.
Listening
Instead of all this, by the other way—that is,
to such counsels as these, he laid his birth-right,
a fool as to sacrifice a kingdom for it ?
changing your religion—you escape all those pains
where so many kings before and since have laid
and difficulties in this world,” said the courtier with
theirs, at the feet of Rome.
a smile, to which] the king responded by a laugh :
It had been arranged that a conference composed
“ as for the other world, I cannot answer for that.”
of an equal number of Roman Catholic bishops and
Mornay Duplessis counselled after another fashion.
Protestant pastors should be held, and that the
The side at which Sully refused to look—the other
point of difference between the two Churches should
world—was the side which Duplessis mainly con¬
be debated in the presence of the king.
sidered.
This was
He charged the king to serve God with
simply a device to save appearances, for Henry’s
a good conscience; to keep Him before his eyes in
mind was already made up.
When the day came,
all his actions; to attempt the union of the king¬
the king forbade the attendance of the Protestants,
dom by the Reformation of the Church, and so to
assigning as a reason that he would not put it in
set an example to all Christendom and posterity.
the power of the bishops to say that they had van¬
“ With what conscience,” said he, “ can I advise
quished them in the argument.
The king’s conduct
you to go to mass if I do not first go myself ? and
throughout was marked by consummate duplicity.
what kind of religion can that be which is taken off
He invited the Reformed to fast, in prospect of
as easily as one’s coat?”
the coming conference, and pray for a blessing upon
and Christian advise.
it; and only three months before his abjuration, he
So did this great patriot
But Henry was only playing with both his
wrote to the pastors assembled at Samur, saying
counsellors.
that he would die rather than renounce his religion;
taken;
and when the conference was about to be held, we
Thursday, July 22, 1593, he met the bishops, with
His course was already irrevocably
he had set his face towards Rome.
On
find him speaking of it to Gabrielle d’Estrees, • with
whom he was to confer on the points of difference
whom he spent the soft hours of dalliance, as an
between the two religions.
ecclesiastical tilt from which he expected no little
humour
amusement, and the denouement of which was fixed
harangues with a few puzzling questions.
already.
“ This morning I begin talking with the
following Sunday morning, the 25th, he repaired
bishops. On Sunday I am to take the perilous leap. ”1
with a sumptuous following of men-at-arms to the
Henry IV. had the happiness to possess as coun¬ sellors two men of commanding talent.
The first
he
would
With a half-malicious
occasionally
Church of St. Denis.
interrupt their On the
On the king’s knocking
the cathedral door was immediately opened.
The
was the Baron Rosny, better known as the illustrious
Bishop of Bourges met him at the head of a train
Sully.
of prelates and priests, and demanded to know the
He was a statesman of rare genius.
Henry, he was a Protestant;
Like
and he bore this
errand on which the king had come.
further resemblance to his royal master, that his
answer,
Protestantism was purely political.
Rome.”
The other,
“ To be
admitted
Henry made
into the Church
of
He was straightway led to the altar, and
Mornay Duplessis, was the equal of Sully in talent,
kneeling on its steps, he swore to live and die in
but his superior in character.
the Romish faith.
upright.
He was inflexibly
These two men were much about the
The organ pealed, the cannon
thundered, the warriors that thronged nave and
king at this hour; both felt the gravity of the
aisle clashed their arms; high mass was performed,
crisis, but differed widely in the advice which they
the king, as he partook, bowing down till his brow
gave.
“I can find,” said Sully,
addressing the
king, “ but two ways out of your present embarrass¬ ments.
By the one you may pass through a million
touched the floor; and a solemn TeDeum concluded and crowned this grand jubilation.2 The abjuration of Henry was viewed by the Pro¬ testants with mingled sorrow, astonishment, and
1 u Le saut perilleux.” p. 234, foot-note.)
(Mem. de Sully, tom. ii., livr. v.,
2 Mem. de Sully, tom. ii., livr. v., p. 239.
622
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
apprehension.
The son of Jeanne d’Albret,
the
policy.
It
is
not
time
yet, we are
told, to
foremost of the Hngnenot chiefs, the Knight of the
grant us an
White Plume, to renounce his faith and go to mass !
thirty-five years of persecution, ten years of banish¬
How fallen!
But Protestantism could survive
ment by the edicts of the League, eight years of
apostasies as well as defeats on the battle-field ; and
the present king’s reign, and four of persecutions.
edict,—yet,
O
merciful God, after
the Huguenots felt that they must look higher than
We ask your majesty for an edict by which we
the throne of Henry IV., and trusting in God,
may enjoy that which is common to all your sub¬
they took measures for the protection and advance¬
jects.
ment of their great cause.
repose to the State,
From their former
The glory of God alone, liberty of conscience, security for our lives and
compatriot and co-religionist, ever since, by the
property—this is the summit of our wishes, and
help of their arms, he had come to the throne, they
the end of our requests.”
had received little save promises.
Their religion
The king still thought to temporise;
but new
was proscribed, their worship was in many in¬
successes on the part of the Spaniards admonished
stances forbidden, their children were often compul¬
him that he had done so too long, and that the policy
sorily educated in the Romish faith, their last wills
of delay was exhausted.
made void, and even their corpses dug out of the
Spanish advances, and the throne which Henry had
grave and thrown like carrion on the fields.
When
The League hailed the
secured by his abjuration he must save by Pro¬
they craved redress, they were bidden be patient
testant swords.
till Henry should be stronger on the throne.
1598, was this famous decree, the Edict of Nantes,
His
apostasy had brought matters to a head, and con¬ vinced the Huguenots that they must look to them¬ selves.
The bishops had made Henry swear, “ I
Accordingly, on the 15th April,,
styled “ perpetual and irrevocable,” issued. “This Magna Charta” says Felice, “of the French Reformation, under the ancient regime, granted the
will endeavour to the utmost of my power, and in
following concessions
good faith, to drive out of my jurisdiction, and from
conscience to all; the public exercise of the 4 reli¬
the lands under my sway, all heretics denounced by
gion ’ in all those places in which it was established
the Church.”
in 1577, and in the suburbs of cities ;
Thus the sword was again hung over
their heads; and can we blame them if now they formed themselves into a
in brief:—Full liberty of
permission
to the lords’ high justiciary to celebrate Divine
political organisation,
worship in their castles, and to the inferior gentry
with a General Council, or Parliament, which met
to admit thirty persons to their domestic worship ;
every year to concert measures of safety, promote
admission of the Reformed to office in the State,,
unity of action, and keep watch over the affairs of
their children to be received into the schools, their
the general body ?
To Henry’s honour it must be
sick into the hospitals, and their poor to share in
acknowledged that he secretly encouraged this Pro¬
the alms; and the concession of a right to print
testant League.
An apostate, he yet escaped the
infamy of the persecutor.
their books in certain cities.”
This edict further
provided for the erection of courts composed of an
The Huguenot council applied to Henry’s govern¬
equal number of Protestants and Roman Catholics
ment for the redress of their wrongs, and the
for the protection of Protestant interests, four Pro¬
restoration of Protestant
and privileges.
testant colleges or institutions, and the right of
passed away in these negotiations,
holding a National Synod, according to the rules of
Four
years
rights
which often degenerated into acrimonious disputes,
the Reformed faith, once every three years.1
and the course of which was marked (1595) by an
State was charged with the duty of providing the
The
atrocious massacre—a repetition, in short, of the
salaries of the Protestant ministers and rectors,, and
affair at Vassy.
At length Henry, sore pressed in
a sum of 165,000 livres of those times (495,000
his war with Spain, and much needing the swords
francs of the present day) was appropriated to that
of the Huguenots, granted an edict in their favour,
purpose.
styled, from the town from which it was issued, the
idea of liberty of conscience, but it was a liberal
Edict of Nantes, which was the glory of his reign.
measure for the
time.
It was a tardy concession to justice, and a late
200 towns into
the
The edict does not come fully up to our As a guarantee
hands
it
put
of the Protestants.
response to complaints long and most touchingly
It was the Edict of Nantes much more than the
urged.
“And yet, sire,” so their remonstrances
abjuration of Henry which conciliated the two
ran, “among us we have neither Jacobins nor
parties in the kingdom, and gave him the peaceful
Jesuits who aim at your life, nor Leagues who
possession of the throne during the few years he
aim at your crown.
was yet to occupy it.
We have never presented
the points of our swords We
are
paid
with
instead
of petitions.
considerations
of
State
1 M$m. de Sully, tom. iii, livr. x., pp. 204, 358.
623
ADMINISTRATIVE GENIUS OF HENKY IV. The signing of this edict inaugurated an era of tranquillity and great prosperity to France.
The
twelve years that followed are perhaps the most
boundless resources which nature has stored up in its soil and climate to develop themselves. Henry’s views in the field of foreign politics were
glorious in the annals of that country since the
equally comprehensive.
opening of the sixteenth century.
great menace to the peace of Europe, and the in¬
Spain imme¬
He clearly saw that the
diately offered terms of peace, and France, weary
dependence of its several nations, was the Austrian
of civil war, sheathed the sword with joy.
power
Now that Henry had rest from war, he gave
in
Spanish.
its
two
branches—the German
and
Philip II. was dead; Spain was waning ;
himself to the not less glorious and more fruitful
nevertheless
labours of peace.
France in all departments of
opportunity to employ the one half of Christendom
that
her organisation was in a state of frightful disorder
of which she was still mistress, in crushing the
—was, in fact, on the verge of ruin. Castles burned
other half.
to the ground, cities half in ruins, lands reverting
with Elizabeth
ambitious
Power
waited
Henry’s project, formed of England,
for
an
in concert
humbling that
into a desert, roads unused, marts and harbours
Power was a vast one, and he had made such
forsaken, were
progress in it that twenty European States had
the melancholy memorials which
presented themselves to one’s eye wherever one
promised to take part
journeyed.
Henry was to lead against Austria.
The national exchequer was empty;
in
for launching that
should have
Heniy’s contingent had been sent off*, and was
their
country with their
force
The moment
the inhabitants were becoming few, for those who enriched
great
the campaign which was
come,
and
labour, or adorned it with their intellect, were
already on German soil.
watering its soil with their blood.
soldiers in a few days and open the campaign.
Some two mil¬
He was to follow his
lions of lives had perished since the breaking out
But this deliverance for Christendom he was fated
of the civil wars.
not to achieve.
Summoning all his powers,
Henry set himself to repair this vast ruin.
In this
His queen, Marie de Medici, to
whom he was recently married, importuned him for
arduous labour he displayed talents of a higher
a public coronation, and Henry resolved to gratify
order and a more valuable kind than any he had
her.
shown in war, and proved himself not less great as
great splendour, was over, and he was now ready to
a statesman than he was as a soldier.
set out, when a melancholy seized him, which he
There was a
The ceremony, which was gone about with
debt of three hundred millions of francs pressing on
could neither account for nor shake off*.
the kingdom.
siveness was all the more
The annual expenditure exceeded
This pen¬
remarkable that his
the revenue by upwards of one hundred millions of
disposition was naturally gay and sprightly.
francs.
the words of Schiller, in his drama of “ Wallen
The taxes paid by the people amounted to
two hundred millions of francs ; but, owing to the abuses of collection, not more than thirty millions found their way into the treasury.
Calling Sully
to his aid, the king set himself to grapple with these gigantic evils, and displayed in the cabinet no less fertility of resource and comprehensiveness of genius than in the field. national debt in ten years.
He cleared off* the He found means of
making the income not only balance the expendi¬ ture, but of exceeding it by many millions.
He
accomplished all this without adding to the burdens of the people.
He understood the springs of the
In
stein ”— “ The king Felt in his heart the phantom of the knife Long ere Ravaillac armed himself therewith. His quiet mind forsook him ; the phantasma Startled him in his Louvre, chased him forth Into the open air : like funeral knells Sounded that coronation festival; And still, with boding sense, he heard the tread Of those feet that even then were seeking him Throughout the streets of Paris.” Wben the coming campaign was referred to, he told the queen and the nobles of his court that
nation’s prosperity, and taught them to flow again.
Germany he would never see—that he would die
He encouraged agriculture, promoted industry and
soon, and in a carriage.
commerce, constructed roads, bridges, and canals.
these gloomy fancies, as
The lands were tilled, herds were reared, the silkworm
“ Go to Germany instantly,” said his minister^
was introduced, the ports were opened for the free
Sully, “and go on horseback.”
export of corn and wine, commercial treaties were
1610, was fixed for the departure of the king.
They tried to laugh away they
accounted
them.
The 19th of Mayr
framed with foreign countries; and France, during
On the 16th, Henry was so distressed as to move
these ten years, showed as conclusively as it did
the compassion of his attendants.
after the war of 1870—71,
retired to his cabinet, but could not write ;
how speedily it can
After dinner he
recover from the effects of the most terrible dis¬
threw himself on his bed, but could not sleep.
asters, when the passions of its children permit the
was overheard
in
prayer.
He
asked,
he He
“What
624
HISTORY OF PROTESTANTISM.
o’clock is it 1 ” and was answered, “ Four of the
which was to make war on God.3
afternoon.
Would not jour Majesty be the better
Rome had launched her excommunication against
of a little fresh air?” The king ordered his carriage,
the “ two Henries,” and now both had fallen by
and, kissing the queen, he set out, accompanied by
her dagger.
two of his nobles, to go to the arsenal.1
Years before,
On the character of Henry IY. we cannot dwell.
He was talking with one of them, the Duke
It was a combination of great qualities and great
d’Epernon, his left hand resting upon the shoulder
faults.
of the other, and thus leaving his side exposed.
but we must not confound military brilliance or
He was a brave soldier and an able ruler ;
The carriage, after traversing the Rue St. Honore,
political genius with moral greatness.
turned into the narrow Rue de la Ferroniere,
tion to a noble cause—the corner-stone of greatness * . ° —he lacked. France—in other words, the glory and
where it was met by a cart, which compelled it to pass at a slow pace, close to the kerbstone.
Entire devo¬
A
dominion of himself and house—was the supreme
monk, Frangois Ravaillac, who had followed the
aim and end of all his toils, talents, and manceuvr-
royal cortege unobserved, stole up, and mounting
ings.
on the wheel, and leaning over the carriage, struck
The Roman Catholics it did not conciliate, and
The great error of his life was his abjuration.
his knife into the side of Henry, which it only
the Protestants it alienated.
grazed.
Nantes that made him strong, and gave to France
The monk struck again, and this time the
dagger took the direction of the heart.
It was the Edict of
The king
almost the only ten years of real prosperity and
fell forward in his carriage, and uttered a low cry.
glory which it has seen since the reign of Francis I.
“ What is the matter, sire % ” asked one of his lords.
Had Henry nobly resolved to ascend the throne
“It is nothing,” replied the king twice, but the
with a good conscience, or not at all—had he
second time so low as to be barely audible.
not paltered with the Jesuits—had he said, “I
Dark
blood began to ooze from the wound, and also from
will give toleration to all, but will myself abide
the mouth.
in the faith my mother taught me”—his own heart
The carriage was instantly turned in
the direction of the Louvre.
As he was being
would
have
been
stronger,
his
life
purer,
his
carried into the palace, Sieur de Cerisy raised his
course less vacillating and halting; the Huguenots,
head;
the
his eyes moved, but he spoke not.
The
king closed his eyes to open them not again any more.
He was carried up-stairs, and laid on his
bed in his closet, where he expired.2
flower
of
French
valour
and
intelligence,
would have rallied round him and borne him to the throne, and kept him on it, in spite of all his enemies.
On what different foundations would
Ravaillac made no attempt to escape : he stood
his throne in that case have rested, and what a
with his bloody knife in his hand till he was ap¬
different glory would have encircled his memory!
prehended ; and when brought before his judges
He set up a throne by abjuration in 1593, to be
and subjected to the torture he justified the deed,
cast down on the scaffold of 1793 !
saying that the king was too favourable to heretics,
We have traced the great drama of the sixteenth
and that he purposed making war on the Pope,
century to its culmination, first in Germany, and next in Geneva and France, and we now propose
1 P. de L’Estoile, apud Mem. de Sully, tom. vii., pp. 406, 407. 2 L’Estoile, Mathieu, Perefixe, &c.—apud Mem. de Sully, tom. vii., pp. 404—412. Malherbe, apud Guizot, vol. iii., PP- 623, 624,
to follow it to its new stage in other countries of Europe.
3 Mem. de Sully, tom. vii., p« 418.